Selected quad for the lemma: authority_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
authority_n church_n council_n tradition_n 2,236 5 9.2761 5 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A69010 Institutions of Christian religion framed out of Gods word, and the writings of the best diuines, methodically handled by questions and answers, fit for all such as desire to know, or practise the will of God. Written in Latin by William Bucanus Professor of Diuinitie in the Vniuersitie of Lausanna. And published in English by Robert Hill, Bachelor in Diuinitie, and Fellow of Saint Iohns Colledge in Cambridge, for the benefit of our English nation, to which is added in the end the practise of papists against Protestant princes.; Institutiones theologicae. English Bucanus, Guillaume. 1606 (1606) STC 3961; ESTC S106002 729,267 922

There are 28 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n but_o yet_o the_o spirit_n be_v to_o be_v try_v that_o be_v by_o a_o metonymy_n those_o which_o say_v they_o be_v endue_v with_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n whether_o they_o be_v of_o god_n 1._o joh._n 4.1_o which_o can_v be_v do_v more_o certain_o by_o any_o thing_n then_o by_o the_o scripture_n to_o which_o the_o lord_n command_v the_o trial_n of_o spirit_n to_o be_v conform_v 4_o conform_v deut._n 13.1_o 2.3_o 4_o neither_o must_v we_o harken_v to_o the_o word_n of_o the_o false_a prophet_n 19_o prophet_n jer._n 23_o 19_o by_o what_o name_n be_v they_o wont_v to_o call_v the_o definition_n of_o synod_n canon_n which_o then_o especial_o have_v authority_n &_o be_v as_o law_n &_o whosoever_o contemn_v &_o violate_v they_o must_v undergo_v the_o politic_a punishment_n inflict_v by_o the_o magistrate_n so_o soon_o as_o they_o be_v ratify_v &_o confirm_v by_o the_o chief_a magistrate_n but_o before_o they_o be_v not_o available_a by_o reason_n of_o political_a punishment_n although_o they_o be_v by_o reason_n of_o censure_n do_v such_o constitution_n bound_v the_o conscience_n before_o god_n no_o true_o by_o themselves_o for_o that_o they_o be_v humane_a and_o mutable_a yet_o notwitstanding_n be_v once_o set_v down_o to_o violate_v or_o contemn_v they_o with_o safe_a conscience_n no_o man_n can_v both_o in_o respect_n of_o scandalize_a other_o as_o also_o by_o reason_n of_o contumacy_n but_o every_o one_o be_v tie_v faithful_o to_o observe_v they_o and_o that_o with_o a_o free_a conscience_n 29_o conscience_n 1_o cor._n 10.28_o 29_o but_o so_o as_o it_o may_v be_v do_v without_o scandal_n that_o be_v so_o that_o the_o weak_a brethren_n be_v not_o offend_v and_o when_o upon_o just_a cause_n we_o be_v hinder_v sometime_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o omit_v they_o our_o conscience_n be_v not_o offend_v what_o be_v the_o end_n of_o this_o power_n in_o general_a the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o the_o edification_n of_o the_o church_n to_o we_o say_v paul_n 2._o cor._n 10.8_o &_o 13.10_o be_v power_n give_v to_o edification_n not_o to_o destruction_n but_o the_o end_n of_o synod_n be_v the_o assertion_n of_o the_o pure_a doctrine_n of_o god_n comprehend_v in_o his_o word_n against_o the_o heretic_n and_o the_o constitution_n of_o ecclesiastical_a government_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o diverse_a circumstance_n of_o time_n place_n and_o person_n what_o effect_n or_o use_n have_v they_o order_n and_o decency_n 4.40_o decency_n 1._o co._n 4.40_o order_n whereby_o the_o precedent_n and_o publisher_n of_o the_o gospel_n have_v a_o certain_a rule_n in_o their_o action_n and_o do_v accustom_v their_o auditor_n to_o obedience_n and_o in_o a_o well_o govern_v estate_n of_o the_o church_n peace_n and_o concord_n be_v keep_v comeliness_n whereby_o we_o may_v be_v incite_v by_o those_o help_n to_o piety_n and_o that_o gravity_n may_v appear_v in_o the_o handle_n of_o piety_n what_o thing_n be_v repugnant_a to_o this_o doctrine_n 1_o the_o error_n both_o of_o those_o which_o ascribe_v to_o much_o and_o also_o of_o those_o which_o do_v attribute_v too_o little_a to_o the_o church_n 2_o the_o error_n of_o the_o novatians_n or_o catharist_n who_o deny_v pardon_n to_o those_o which_o be_v fall_v by_o their_o confession_n or_o to_o those_o which_o be_v defile_v with_o great_a offence_n 3_o the_o monarchy_n of_o the_o papacy_n and_o tyranny_n which_o they_o have_v arrogate_a to_o themselves_o in_o translate_n the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o world_n 2_o that_o tyrannical_a voice_n that_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n ought_v to_o be_v judge_v of_o no_o mortal_a man_n and_o that_o he_o be_v above_o the_o council_n 3_o that_o usurp_a and_o abuse_v the_o key_n and_o the_o power_n of_o remit_v or_o retain_v sin_n at_o his_o pleasure_n 4_o that_o maioritie_n and_o supreme_a power_n which_o he_o have_v take_v to_o himself_o by_o virtue_n of_o succession_n and_o of_o the_o church_n when_o soever_o he_o please_v in_o consign_v the_o canon_n of_o scripture_n in_o interpret_n the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o give_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n in_o forge_v new_a article_n of_o our_o faith_n in_o make_v law_n and_o propose_v tradition_n and_o establish_v wicked_a decree_n because_o as_o they_o say_v that_o the_o bishop_n have_v all_o law_n in_o the_o closet_n of_o his_o heart_n 5._o all_o ceremony_n popish_a rite_n and_o will-worship_n repugnant_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n 6_o that_o error_n that_o the_o church_n be_v the_o rule_n of_o all_o thing_n which_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v when_o as_o on_o the_o contrary_a the_o scripture_n alone_o be_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n 7._o a_o wicked_a and_o superstitious_a opinion_n of_o necessity_n merit_n and_o worship_n in_o the_o observation_n of_o humane_a ceremony_n 8._o a_o foolish_a zeal_n of_o moses_n law_n 9_o that_o sacrilege_n whereby_o they_o drive_v the_o laity_n from_o the_o read_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o do_v prohibit_v bibles_n to_o be_v print_v in_o the_o vulgar_a tongue_n 10._o furthermore_o that_o council_n shall_v be_v assemble_v and_o govern_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o that_o such_o council_n can_v err_v 11._o that_o the_o church_n ought_v to_o supply_v the_o defect_n of_o the_o word_n write_v by_o write_a tradition_n which_o be_v to_o attribute_v more_o authority_n and_o power_n to_o the_o church_n then_o be_v meet_v 12_o that_o the_o church_n be_v eminent_a in_o general_a council_n and_o that_o the_o truth_n remain_v no_o where_o but_o among_o their_o pastor_n 13._o that_o the_o power_n of_o interpret_n the_o scripture_n be_v in_o the_o council_n and_o that_o no_o man_n may_v appeal_v from_o they_o 14._o that_o the_o approbation_n of_o the_o scripture_n to_o be_v either_o canonical_a or_o apocryphal_a depend_v on_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n 15._o the_o contempt_n of_o constitution_n simple_o for_o order_n and_o decency_n appoint_v in_o the_o church_n 16._o the_o error_n of_o those_o who_o in_o ecclesiastical_a controversy_n rest_v on_o their_o own_o private_a judgement_n &_o opinion_n do_v disclaim_v synod_n and_o all_o definition_n deliver_v by_o synod_n the_o four_o and_o forty_o common_a place_n of_o the_o government_n and_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o church_n where_o also_o of_o fast_v what_o be_v the_o three_o part_n of_o ecclesiastical_a power_n ivdiciarie_n or_o jurisdiction_n ecclesiastical_a altogether_o to_o be_v distinguish_v from_o civil_a and_o be_v common_o call_v power_n and_o it_o be_v another_o part_n or_o kind_n of_o the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n distinguish_v from_o the_o former_a for_o that_o the_o first_o whereof_o mat._n 16.19_o and_o joh._n 20.23_o which_o be_v the_o office_n of_o teach_v or_o of_o preach_v the_o gospel_n commit_v to_o the_o pastor_n do_v proper_o appertain_v unto_o they_o but_o this_o do_v belong_v to_o the_o moral_a discipline_n of_o the_o church_n and_o repress_v of_o offenc_n commend_v to_o the_o church_n which_o the_o grecian_n call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v discipline_n correction_n institution_n whereof_o christ_n speak_v mat._n 18.17.18_o if_o a_o brother_n do_v not_o hear_v the_o church_n let_v he_o be_v as_o a_o heathen_a or_o publican_n unto_o thou_o very_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o whatsoever_o you_o shall_v bind_v on_o earth_n shall_v be_v bind_v in_o heaven_n and_o whatsoever_o you_o shall_v loose_v shall_v be_v loose_v for_o the_o church_n do_v bind_v who_o she_o do_v excommunicate_a and_o she_o do_v loose_a when_o she_o again_o receive_v man_n into_o her_o society_n what_o be_v ecclesiastical_a government_n it_o be_v a_o ecclesiastical_a paedagogie_n institute_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n whereby_o man_n be_v receive_v into_o the_o family_n of_o christ_n they_o be_v guide_v to_o godliness_n and_o compel_v not_o to_o commit_v any_o thing_n unworthy_a the_o christian_a profession_n but_o those_o which_o do_v offend_v and_o be_v inordinate_a be_v reprove_v chide_v and_o correct_v that_o they_o may_v return_v into_o the_o right_a way_n and_o that_o every_o one_o may_v do_v their_o duty_n according_a to_o the_o direction_n of_o the_o gospel_n how_o manifold_a be_v ecclesiastical_a government_n twofold_a common_a unto_o which_o all_o citizen_n of_o the_o church_n ought_v equal_o to_o be_v subject_a and_o proper_a which_o be_v peculiar_a to_o the_o clergy_n and_o do_v sole_o appertain_v to_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n to_o retain_v they_o in_o their_o duty_n and_o the_o common_a again_o be_v twofold_a ordinary_a &_o extraordinary_a now_o that_o be_v ordinary_a which_o always_o have_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o apostolical_a tradition_n for_o his_o rule_n and_o from_o which_o it_o do_v never_o decline_v and_o be_v always_o observe_v in_o the_o church_n how_o many_o part_n be_v there_o of_o ordinary_a
repentance_n 1.4_o repentance_n marc._n 1.4_o while_o he_o teach_v these_o who_o he_o be_v about_o to_o baptise_v out_o of_o which_o place_n the_o anabaptist_n impugn_v child_n baptism_n it_o be_v not_o precise_o to_o be_v tie_v to_o the_o order_n of_o word_n but_o to_o be_v distinct_o apply_v to_o those_o which_o may_v be_v teach_v or_o their_o child_n which_o be_v stranger_n from_o the_o covenant_n who_o must_v be_v first_o instruct_v before_o they_o be_v baptize_v but_o it_o be_v to_o be_v apply_v otherwise_o to_o child_n that_o be_v within_o the_o covenant_n who_o though_o they_o can_v hear_v the_o gospel_n yet_o can_v and_o aught_o to_o be_v baptize_v for_o that_o they_o be_v both_o bear_v in_o and_o belong_v unto_o the_o church_n before_o they_o can_v be_v teach_v and_o then_o it_o be_v time_n enough_o to_o teach_v they_o when_o they_o be_v capable_a of_o learning_n howbeit_o in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n the_o word_n be_v not_o there_o separate_v from_o child_n baptism_n likewise_o also_o this_o he_o that_o believe_v &_o be_v baptize_v shall_v be_v save_v but_o he_o that_o believe_v not_o although_o he_o be_v baptize_v shall_v be_v condemn_v belong_v not_o to_o the_o child_n of_o the_o faithful_a but_o to_o those_o which_o may_v hear_v the_o gospel_n as_o likewise_o that_o of_o the_o apostle_n 2._o thess_n 3_o 10._o he_o that_o labour_v not_o let_v he_o not_o eat_v which_o be_v speak_v unto_o man_n of_o year_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v infer_v upon_o all_o indifferent_o nor_o follow_v it_o simple_o that_o because_o all_o believer_n be_v to_o be_v baptize_v therefore_o all_o that_o be_v baptize_v aught_o to_o believe_v or_o because_o a_o universal_a affimative_a be_v not_o simple_o convert_v neither_o be_v these_o term_n convertible_a to_o be_v baptize_v and_o believe_v but_o to_o be_v baptize_v and_o to_o be_v acknowledge_v for_o the_o member_n of_o the_o church_n 8_o for_o that_o paul_n 1._o cor._n 10.2_o witness_v that_o all_o the_o israelite_n which_o pass_v through_o the_o red_a sea_n be_v baptize_v among_o who_o see_v no_o doubt_n there_o be_v many_o child_n among_o so_o many_o thousand_o no_o doubt_v they_o likewise_o receive_v the_o type_n and_o figure_n of_o our_o baptism_n it_o be_v therefore_o false_a which_o our_o adversary_n object_n that_o no_o place_n of_o scripture_n testify_v the_o baptism_n of_o infant_n likewise_o though_o we_o read_v not_o that_o the_o apostle_n baptize_v any_o infant_n by_o name_n yet_o they_o baptise_a whole_a family_n whereof_o child_n be_v not_o the_o small_a portion_n 1.6_o portion_n act._n 16.15_o &_o 18_o 8._o 1_o cor._n 1.6_o neither_o need_v we_o to_o use_v figure_n when_o the_o word_n be_v plain_a neither_o can_v there_o from_o these_o speech_n be_v collect_v any_o reason_n of_o such_o a_o synecdoche_n by_o which_o we_o must_v understand_v portion_n of_o year_n only_o and_o exclude_v child_n 9_o because_o ancient_a writer_n testify_v that_o the_o custom_n of_o baptise_v child_n have_v continue_v from_o the_o very_a apostle_n time_n till_o now_o origen_n faith_n 13_o in_o 6._o ad_fw-la ad_fw-la rom._n de_fw-fr peccatorum_fw-la meritis_fw-la et_fw-la remis_fw-la l._n 3_o c._n 6._o et_fw-la contra_fw-la donat_n l._n 4._o c._n 13_o the_o church_n receive_v a_o tradition_n from_o the_o apostle_n to_o give_v baptism_n even_o to_o infant_n and_o augustine_n say_v of_o the_o baptism_n of_o child_n that_o which_o the_o universal_a church_n hold_v and_o be_v never_o decree_v by_o council_n but_o always_o have_v be_v hold_v it_o may_v be_v verse_n well_o believe_v that_o it_o be_v deliver_v no_o otherwise_o but_o by_o apostolic_a authority_n therefore_o it_o be_v false_a which_o the_o papist_n say_v that_o baptism_n of_o child_n proceed_v not_o so_o much_o from_o any_o apparent_a commandment_n of_o the_o scripture_n or_o from_o example_n as_o from_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o church_n then_o because_o to_o whosoever_o the_o promise_n appertain_v to_o they_o also_o belong_v the_o sign_n as_o therefore_o baptism_n be_v bestow_v upon_o infant_n be_v likewise_o the_o supper_n of_o the_o lord_n to_o be_v administer_v unto_o they_o certain_a of_o the_o father_n have_v think_v so_o as_o cyprian_n serm_n 5._o de_fw-la lapsis_fw-la and_o augustin_n lib._n the_o eccle._n dogmat_fw-la c._n 52._o be_v move_v by_o these_o word_n john_n 6.53_o except_o you_o shall_v eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n and_o drink_v his_o blood_n you_o shall_v have_v no_o life_n in_o you_o but_o we_o deny_v the_o consequent_a for_o this_o place_n speak_v not_o of_o a_o sacramental_a eat_n but_o of_o a_o spiritual_a eat_n or_o of_o faith_n by_o which_o the_o faithful_a be_v quicken_v which_o be_v annex_v unto_o christ_n who_o offer_v his_o body_n and_o shed_v his_o blood_n for_o us._n and_o by_o this_o mean_v the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n be_v make_v unto_o we_o meat_n indeed_o and_o his_o blood_n drink_v indeed_o second_o that_o to_o whosoever_o the_o promise_n appertain_v to_o they_o also_o belong_v the_o sign_n be_v true_a but_o according_a to_o the_o divine_a determination_n appropriate_v to_o every_o sacrament_n to_o wit_n so_o that_o the_o sacrament_n of_o engraft_v be_v bestow_v aswell_o upon_o infant_n as_o those_o of_o year_n but_o upon_o male_a child_n only_o &_o that_o not_o before_o the_o eight_o day_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n but_o in_o the_o new_a both_o to_o the_o male_a and_o female_a without_o any_o prefix_a time_n but_o the_o sacrament_n of_o nourishment_n to_o they_o of_o year_n only_o and_o that_o for_o a_o certain_a peculiar_a end_n and_o the_o diversity_n of_o the_o circumstance_n of_o the_o action_n so_o the_o eucharist_n have_v his_o proper_a end_n that_o the_o death_n of_o the_o lord_n shall_v be_v declare_v in_o the_o public_a congregation_n in_o the_o use_v thereof_o it_o be_v also_o command_v that_o every_o one_o which_o come_v to_o the_o lord_n supper_n shall_v examine_v himself_o yea_o and_o peculiar_a action_n belong_v to_o the_o external_a rite_n to_o wit_n to_o eat_v and_o to_o drink_v which_o be_v not_o fit_a for_o little_a child_n so_o under_o the_o old_a testament_n circumcision_n be_v appoint_v for_o infant_n but_o the_o passover_n to_o they_o only_o which_o by_o reason_n of_o their_o age_n be_v able_a to_o ask_v of_o the_o signification_n thereof_o 62_o thereof_o exod._n 12_o 62_o hereupon_o come_v those_o vulgar_a verse_n ebrius_fw-la infamis_fw-la erroneus_fw-la atque_fw-la furentes_fw-la cum_fw-la pveris_fw-la domini_fw-la non_fw-la debent_fw-la sumere_fw-la corpus_fw-la to_o drunkard_n and_o thinfamous_a sort_n to_o man_n mislead_v and_o mad_a to_o child_n christ_n body_n to_o give_v it_o be_v a_o action_n bad_a why_o will_v christ_n be_v baptize_v at_o the_o age_n of_o thirty_o year_n luke_n 3.23_o see_v he_o need_v neither_o remission_n of_o sin_n nor_o regeneration_n christ_n himself_o answer_v it_o at_o what_o time_n john_n refuse_v to_o baptise_v he_o mat._n 3.15_o let_v it_o be_v so_o now_o for_o so_o it_o behoove_v we_o to_o fulfil_v all_o righteousness_n which_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v distributive_o to_o wit_n thou_o in_o thy_o office_n and_o i_o in_o i_o but_o whereas_o he_o will_v at_o that_o time_n be_v subject_a to_o that_o ministry_n he_o do_v it_o for_o diverse_a cause_n first_o to_o show_v that_o he_o do_v approve_v of_o the_o doctrine_n baptism_n and_o ministry_n of_o john_n and_o commend_v unto_o we_o the_o use_n of_o the_o sacrament_n by_o his_o own_o example_n second_o that_o he_o may_v sanctify_v in_o his_o own_o body_n our_o baptism_n have_v the_o same_o common_a with_o we_o as_o a_o most_o firm_a bond_n of_o union_n and_o fellowship_n which_o he_o vouchsafe_v to_o enter_v with_o we_o at_o a_o time_n most_o fit_a namely_o when_o he_o will_v give_v a_o beginning_n to_o his_o own_o preach_n &_o to_o the_o new_a testament_n and_o also_o to_o testify_v that_o the_o same_o thing_n be_v invisible_o in_o our_o baptism_n which_o be_v visible_o in_o his_o when_o the_o heaven_n be_v open_v &_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n come_v down_o three_o to_o signify_v that_o he_o be_v therefore_o send_v to_o be_v baptize_v namely_o to_o be_v drench_v in_o death_n and_o to_o wash_v away_o our_o sin_n with_o his_o blood_n luke_n 12.50_o i_o must_v be_v baptize_v with_o another_o baptism_n and_o how_o be_o i_o grieve_v till_o it_o be_v perfect_v four_o that_o the_o truth_n may_v answer_v the_o type_n or_o figure_n for_o as_o when_o the_o high_a priest_n be_v consecrate_v first_o his_o whole_a body_n be_v wash_v with_o water_n than_o he_o be_v set_v before_o the_o people_n clothe_v with_o the_o priestly_a garment_n and_o then_o the_o trumpet_n sound_v while_o oil_n be_v pour_v upon_o his_o head_n 10.3_o head_n exod._n 29_o 4.5.6_o num._n 10.3_o which_o be_v also_o do_v at_o the_o king_n installing_n
may_v be_v persuade_v and_o that_o they_o may_v know_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v canonical_a neither_o shall_v we_o have_v believe_v the_o scripture_n except_o the_o church_n have_v propose_v they_o and_o recommend_v they_o unto_o we_o but_o that_o in_o private_a and_o internal_o man_n may_v be_v persuade_v in_o their_o heart_n of_o their_o verity_n none_o can_v effect_v that_o but_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n for_o neither_o faith_n be_v the_o gift_n of_o the_o church_n neither_o be_v our_o faith_n resolve_v into_o the_o voice_n and_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n but_o in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n comprise_v in_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n whether_o have_v the_o church_n authority_n and_o full_a power_n to_o interpret_v the_o scripture_n no_o but_o it_o have_v his_o power_n from_o the_o holy_a ghost_n speak_v public_o and_o manifest_o in_o the_o scripture_n and_o also_o secret_o testify_v the_o same_o in_o our_o heart_n &_o also_o in_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n so_o that_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v to_o be_v take_v only_o out_o of_o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o the_o scripture_n be_v to_o be_v interpret_v by_o scripture_n because_o faith_n alone_o do_v proceed_v from_o the_o scripture_n 2_o because_o they_o be_v to_o be_v expound_v and_o understand_v by_o the_o same_o spirit_n wherewith_o they_o be_v write_v according_a to_o that_o of_o joh._n 2_o 10._o the_o anoint_v teach_v you_o of_o all_o thing_n 16._o thing_n isa_n 50_o 16._o 3_o because_o the_o church_n have_v not_o equal_a authority_n with_o the_o scripture_n 1.18_o scripture_n gal._n 1.18_o 4_o because_o those_o of_o berea_n be_v commend_v for_o that_o they_o do_v examine_v paul_n doctrine_n by_o the_o scripture_n 17.11_o scripture_n act._n 17.11_o 5_o because_o the_o church_n may_v err_v 6_o because_o he_o alone_o have_v the_o great_a authority_n in_o expound_v the_o law_n which_o make_v the_o law_n so_o we_o read_v nehem._n 8_o 8._o he_o read_v plain_o the_o law_n unto_o the_o people_n and_o expound_v the_o meaning_n he_o make_v it_o plain_a by_o the_o scripture_n itself_o yet_o notwithstanding_o we_o deny_v not_o but_o that_o the_o church_n have_v power_n to_o interpret_v the_o scripture_n and_o that_o only_a in_o the_o church_n this_o gift_n of_o interpretation_n do_v remain_v but_o we_o deny_v that_o the_o interpretation_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v tie_v to_o any_o certain_a seat_n and_o succession_n of_o man_n and_o that_o the_o pope_n ought_v to_o challenge_v to_o himself_o such_o power_n over_o the_o scripture_n for_o moses_n very_o do_v sit_v as_o chief_a judge_n in_o matter_n controversall_a 26_o controversall_a ep._n 18.13_o 26_o but_o he_o be_v a_o prophet_n endue_v with_o singular_a wisdom_n adorn_v with_o extraordinary_a gift_n of_o god_n commend_v by_o divine_a testimony_n from_o god_n and_o send_v immediate_o from_o god_n himself_o but_o the_o pope_n have_v no_o such_o power_n and_o deut._n 17.8_o and_o in_o the_o verse_n follow_v all_o be_v command_v to_o obey_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o chief_a judge_n but_o with_o this_o condition_n if_o that_o be_v judge_v according_a to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o mal._n 1.7_o it_o be_v command_v that_o the_o priest_n lip_n shall_v keep_v knowledge_n and_o that_o they_o shall_v require_v the_o law_n out_o of_o his_o mouth_n but_o they_o have_v no_o promise_n that_o they_o shall_v al●aies_o do_v so_o for_o it_o follow_v but_o you_o have_v decline_v out_o of_o the_o way_n &_o have_v cause_v many_o so_o to_o do_v neither_o do_v the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n commit_v to_o peter_n 16.19_o peter_n mat._n 16.19_o signify_v authority_n of_o interpret_n the_o scripture_n but_o of_o preach_v the_o gospel_n which_o be_v not_o sole_o give_v to_o peter_n but_o also_o to_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n 20.21_o apostle_n mat._n 20.18_o joh._n 20.21_o and_z mat._n 18.17_o christ_n command_v the_o church_n to_o be_v hear_v but_o that_o be_v the_o true_a church_n and_o then_o only_o when_o she_o do_v command_v those_o thing_n which_o christ_n do_v approve_v and_o command_v so_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n be_v to_o be_v hear_v 2_o hear_v mat._n 23_o 2_o so_o long_o as_o sit_v in_o moses_n chair_n they_o do_v follow_v moses_n in_o his_o teach_n otherwise_o christ_n give_v his_o disciple_n a_o caveat_n to_o take_v heed_n of_o the_o leaven_n of_o the_o pharisee_n 16.6_o pharisee_n mat._n 16.6_o 7_o in_o council_n many_o great_a thing_n have_v be_v define_v yet_o notwithstanding_o we_o see_v it_o have_v be_v determine_v not_o according_a to_o the_o council_n but_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n act._n 15.6.15_o what_o power_n have_v the_o church_n in_o tradition_n or_o make_v law_n it_o be_v constitutive_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d not_o for_o that_o it_o have_v any_o power_n to_o impose_v law_n upon_o the_o conscience_n or_o that_o they_o shall_v prescribe_v what_o be_v just_a or_o what_o be_v unjust_a which_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o the_o angel_n to_o do_v a_o for_o our_o only_a master_n and_o lawgiver_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n b_o our_o spouse_n 5.30_o spouse_n eph._n 5.30_o lord_n 8.6_o lord_n 1._o cor._n 8.6_o the_o interpreter_n of_o his_o father_n will_n 1.18_o will_n joh_n 1.18_o the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n 5.15_o church_n eph._n 5.15_o and_o alone_a doctor_n of_o who_o alone_o absolute_o be_v speak_v 4.11_o gal._n 1.8_o jam._n 4.11_o hear_v he_o 17.7_o he_o mat._n 17.7_o who_o alone_o have_v power_n and_o authority_n over_o our_o conscience_n who_o also_o most_o full_o in_o his_o word_n have_v comprise_v and_o plain_o declare_v all_o the_o counsel_n of_o our_o salvation_n and_o the_o whole_a sum_n of_o true_a righteousness_n and_o all_o the_o part_n of_o the_o worship_n of_o his_o name_n unto_o which_o either_o to_o add_v or_o detract_v be_v abominable_a but_o because_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o the_o pastor_n &_o governous_a of_o the_o church_n in_o external_a and_o indifferent_a thing_n to_o establish_v or_o abrogate_v certain_a rule_n canon_n or_o law_n for_o the_o government_n order_n &_o decency_n as_o also_o certain_a rite_n for_o the_o maintenance_n of_o honesty_n &_o for_o the_o better_a maintain_v of_o a_o consent_n in_o all_o the_o member_n of_o the_o church_n in_o this_o outward_a worship_n so_o far_o forth_o as_o either_o the_o necessity_n or_o profit_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v think_v requisite_a neither_o be_v such_o canon_n for_o the_o most_o part_n universal_a or_o perpetual_a col._n 2.5_o for_o all_o thing_n in_o the_o church_n ought_v to_o be_v do_v decent_o and_o orderly_o which_o be_v the_o house_n of_o god_n 3.15_o god_n 1_o cor._n 14.40_o 1_o tim._n 3.15_o by_o the_o example_n of_o the_o apostle_n in_o the_o first_o synod_n hold_v at_o jerusalem_n and_o of_o paul_n 11.4.7.34_o paul_n 1_o cor._n 11.4.7.34_o of_o these_o rule_v the_o apostle_n 2._o thess_n 2.15_o say_v hold_v the_o tradition_n which_o you_o have_v learned_a either_o by_o word_n or_o by_o our_o epistle_n except_o we_o will_v understand_v by_o doctrine_n deliver_v not_o a_o other_o which_o partly_o by_o word_n and_o partly_o by_o epistle_n be_v deliver_v but_o the_o same_o which_o both_o by_o word_n as_o also_o by_o paul_n epistle_n they_o be_v teach_v 3.6_o teach_v 2_o thess_n 3.6_o but_o the_o spirit_n the_o teacher_n of_o all_o truth_n 15.24_o truth_n act._n 15.24_o be_v especial_o promise_v to_o the_o apostle_n 16._o apostle_n joh._n 14._o &_o 16._o teach_v they_o no_o new_a thing_n but_o declare_v and_o bring_v to_o their_o memory_n that_o which_o before_o they_o have_v hear_v and_o although_o all_o the_o word_n be_v not_o write_v word_n for_o word_n but_o only_o in_o substance_n yet_o notwithstanding_o all_o thing_n necessary_a be_v write_v john_n 20.31_o show_v some_o example_n of_o those_o law_n which_o be_v appoint_v or_o those_o tradition_n which_o be_v to_o be_v make_v by_o the_o church_n or_o these_o ecclesiastical_a constitution_n deliver_v by_o word_n of_o mouth_n such_o as_o these_o that_o the_o supper_n of_o the_o lord_n must_v be_v receive_v of_o those_o which_o be_v fast_v that_o we_o must_v pray_v kneel_v and_o bareheaded_a that_o the_o sacrament_n must_v be_v administer_v not_o base_o but_o with_o some_o reverence_n and_o dignity_n that_o in_o bury_v the_o dead_a and_o in_o matrimony_n some_o decorum_n shall_v be_v observe_v to_o appoint_v day_n hour_n certain_a place_n consent_n of_o song_n solemn_a order_n in_o prayer_n and_o sermon_n in_o provide_v catechism_n and_o destine_v they_o all_o to_o mystical_a action_n and_o other_o such_o like_a which_o according_a to_o their_o genus_fw-la or_o kind_n that_o be_v such_o a_o decency_n command_v to_o we_o all_o be_v divine_a but_o according_a to_o their_o special_a form_n chey_n be_v humane_a and_o changeable_a what_o caution_n
place_n 2._o of_o christ_n page_n 13_o of_o his_o person_n page_n 14_o of_o phrase_n page_n 20_o of_o his_o office_n page_n 24_o place_n 3._o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n page_n 28_o of_o personal_a property_n page_n 33_o place_n 4._o of_o the_o scripture_n page_n 37_o place_n 5._o of_o the_o world_n creation_n page_n 48_o and_o the_o part_n thereof_o page_n 54_o place_n 6._o of_o angel_n in_o general_n page_n 64_o of_o good_a angel_n page_n 67_o place_n 7._o of_o evil_a angel_n or_o devil_n page_n 77_o place_n 8._o of_o man._n page_n 88_o of_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n page_n 90_o place_n 9_o of_o god_n image_n in_o man_n page_n 99_o place_n 10._o of_o original_a righteousness_n page_n 104_o place_n 11._o of_o man_n free_a will_n before_o the_o fall_n page_n 106_o of_o man_n state_n before_o his_o fall_n page_n 110_o place_n 12._o of_o marriage_n ordain_v by_o god_n before_o the_o fall_n and_o after_o confirm_v again_o by_o god_n page_n 112_o of_o the_o degree_n of_o consanguinity_n and_o affinity_n page_n 120_o place_n 13._o of_o divorce_n page_n 129_o place_n 14._o of_o the_o government_n of_o the_o world_n or_o of_o god_n providence_n page_n 139_o place_n 15._o of_o sin_n in_o general_n especial_o of_o original_a sin_n page_n 154_o place_n 16._o of_o actual_a sin_n page_n 170_o place_n 17._o of_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n page_n 175_o place_n 18._o of_o freewill_n after_o the_o fall_n page_n 181_o of_o the_o cause_n of_o conversion_n page_n 185_o place_n 19_o of_o the_o law_n page_n 189_o place_n 20._o of_o the_o gospel_n page_n 202_o place_n 21._o of_o the_o agreement_n &_o disagreement_n of_o the_o law_n and_o the_o gospel_n page_n 209_o place_n 22._o of_o the_o agreement_n and_o discrepancie_n of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n page_n 213_o place_n 23._o of_o the_o passion_n and_o death_n of_o christ._n page_n 224_o place_n 24._o of_o the_o burial_n of_o christ_n page_n 238_o place_n 25._o of_o christ_n descend_v into_o hel._n page_n 245_o of_o limbus_n page_n 247_o place_n 26._o of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n page_n 253_o place_n 27._o of_o the_o ascension_n of_o christ_n page_n 265_o of_o heaven_n page_n 270_o place_n 28._o of_o christ_n sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o his_o father_n page_n 276_o place_n 29._o of_o faith_n page_n 287_o place_n 30._o of_o repentance_n page_n 309_o of_o confession_n page_n 322_o of_o satisfaction_n page_n 323_o place_n 31._o of_o man_n justification_n before_o god_n page_n 328_o how_o justification_n and_o regeneration_n differ_v page_n 344_o place_n 32._o of_o good_a work_n page_n 359_o of_o merit_n page_n 367_o place_n 33._o of_o christian_a liberty_n page_n 379_o of_o thing_n indifferent_a page_n 386_o of_o tradition_n page_n 388_o place_n 34._o of_o offence_n page_n 392_o place_n 35._o of_o prayer_n page_n 401_o of_o invocation_n of_o saint_n page_n 407_o place_n 36._o of_o predestination_n page_n 421_o of_o election_n page_n 430_o of_o reprobation_n page_n 439_o place_n 37._o of_o the_o last_o resurrection_n page_n 451_o place_n 38._o of_o the_o last_o judgement_n page_n 466_o place_n 39_o of_o eternal_a life_n page_n 482_o place_n 40._o of_o eternal_a death_n page_n 494_o of_o hell_n page_n 498_o place_n 41._o of_o the_o church_n page_n 501_o place_n 42._o of_o the_o ministry_n and_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n page_n 530_o of_o their_o call_n page_n 548_o of_o imposition_n of_o hand_n page_n 553_o place_n 43._o of_o the_o power_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n page_n 570_o of_o synod_n page_n 581_o place_n 44._o of_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n page_n 586_o of_o excommunication_n page_n 593_o of_o anathematise_v page_n 597_o of_o fast_v page_n 600_o place_n 45._o of_o vow_n page_n 609_o 615_o place_n 46._o of_o the_o sacrament_n in_o general_n page_n 615_o of_o circumcision_n page_n 631_o of_o the_o passeover_n page_n 640_o of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n page_n 648._o and_o 675._o place_n 47._o of_o baptism_n page_n 695_o of_o johns_n baptism_n page_n 699_o of_o baptise_v of_o infant_n page_n 715_o of_o exorcism_n page_n 729_o of_o imposition_n of_o name_n page_n 731_o place_n 48._o of_o the_o lord_n supper_n page_n 741_o of_o the_o mass_n page_n 743_o of_o take_v away_o the_o cup_n page_n 750_o of_o the_o sacrifice_n in_o the_o supper_n page_n 764_o of_o miracle_n page_n 789_o of_o god_n omnipotency_n page_n 793_o of_o the_o circumscription_n of_o christ_n body_n page_n 798_o of_o our_o communion_n with_o christ_n page_n 908_o place_n 49._o of_o magistrate_n page_n 854_o of_o revenge_n page_n 865_o of_o judgement_n page_n 875_o of_o war_n page_n 881_o of_o equity_n page_n 891_o of_o law_n page_n 892_o of_o subject_n page_n 893_o that_o papi_v make_v it_o lawful_a to_o murder_v prince_n page_n 902_o page_n 611._o line_n 16._o for_o consent_n read_v constraint_n page_n 860._o lin_v 26_o man_n mind_n for_o man_n mind_n the_o rest_n pardon_n as_o also_o that_o one_o or_o two_o short_a question_n be_v omit_v what_o be_v the_o main_a and_o most_o principal_a point_n in_o sacred_a divinity_n concern_v god_n for_o this_o be_v life_n eternal_a say_v christ_n joh._n 17.3_o that_o they_o acknowledge_v thou_o the_o only_a true_a god_n and_o who_o thou_o have_v send_v jesus_n christ_n how_o do_v you_o prove_v that_o there_o be_v a_o god_n 1._o out_o of_o the_o book_n of_o nature_n or_o the_o work_n of_o god_n 2._o out_o of_o the_o book_n of_o the_o scripture_n or_o the_o word_n of_o god_n the_o book_n of_o nature_n be_v this_o universal_a world_n which_o be_v so_o call_v because_o of_o the_o beauty_n furniture_n order_n and_o use_v thereof_o all_o which_o do_v proclaim_v the_o chief-builder_n thereof_o to_o be_v most_o wise_a most_o mighty_a and_o most_o bountiful_a but_o of_o all_o the_o rest_n man_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o little_a world_n whether_o you_o respect_v his_o soul_n and_o the_o faculty_n thereof_o or_o the_o frame_n of_o his_o body_n and_o the_o manifold_a and_o worthy_a use_n of_o the_o part_n of_o this_o frame_n do_v prove_v and_o commend_v the_o workman_n as_o psal_n 19.1_o the_o heaven_n declare_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o the_o firmament_n show_v the_o work_n of_o his_o hand_n day_n unto_o day_n utter_v the_o same_o and_o night_n unto_o night_n show_v knowledge_n 17.23.27_o knowledge_n psal_n 104.2_o rom._n 1.19.20_o &_o 2.15_o act._n 14.15.16.17_o &_o 17.23.27_o yea_o every_o herb_n declare_v that_o there_o be_v a_o god_n 4.8_o god_n mat._n 6.26.26.28_o gal._n 4.8_o yet_o this_o knowledge_n be_v very_o imperfect_a and_o very_o weak_a and_o no_o way_n available_a to_o salvation_n 1.21_o salvation_n 1._o cor._n 1.21_o which_o notwithstanding_o make_v man_n without_o excuse_n 1.20_o excuse_n rom._n 1.20_o whereupon_o tertullian_n say_v first_o god_n send_v nature_n to_o be_v our_o schoole-dame_n purpose_v afterward_o to_o send_v the_o word_n that_o so_o have_v learn_v in_o the_o school_n of_o nature_n we_o may_v the_o more_o easy_o believe_v the_o word_n of_o god_n so_o then_o as_o when_o i_o see_v a_o house_n i_o say_v there_o have_v be_v a_o carpenter_n though_o i_o see_v he_o not_o so_o when_o i_o look_v upon_o the_o frame_n of_o this_o world_n i_o must_v say_v it_o have_v a_o builder_n though_o i_o behold_v he_o not_o show_v i_o the_o principal_a reason_n to_o prove_v that_o there_o be_v a_o god_n first_o because_o there_o be_v motion_n in_o the_o world_n now_o nothing_o can_v be_v move_v but_o by_o some_o be_v which_o actual_o be_v 2._o because_o there_o must_v be_v a_o primarie_a cause_n on_o which_o all_o the_o rest_n depend_v 3._o because_o all_o thing_n be_v direct_v to_o a_o end_n whence_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v that_o there_o be_v some_o one_o supreme_a spirit_n which_o do_v order_v all_o thing_n not_o only_o to_o their_o special_a end_n but_o also_o to_o some_o one_o sovereign_a end_n prou._n 16.4_o the_o lord_n have_v make_v all_o thing_n for_o himself_o 4._o because_o it_o necessary_o follow_v that_o there_o must_v be_v some_o summum_fw-la bonum_fw-la and_o first_o be_v which_o may_v be_v the_o cause_n of_o goodness_n existence_n and_o perfection_n in_o the_o rest_n 5._o because_o no_o cause_n be_v worse_a than_o his_o effect_n now_o there_o be_v creature_n which_o use_v reason_n and_o a_o wise_a order_n therefore_o the_o cause_n of_o these_o creature_n must_v needs_o be_v most_o wise_a 6._o because_o man_n conscience_n after_o sin_n commit_v do_v natural_o stand_v in_o fear_n of_o a_o supreme_a judge_n 7._o because_o upon_o grievous_a sin_n even_o in_o this_o life_n there_o be_v inflict_v grievous_a punishment_n psa_fw-la 37.36.38.11.8_o because_o all_o nation_n be_v they_o never_o so_o barbarous_a be_v persuade_v that_o there_o be_v
and_o a_o better_a life_n what_o be_v the_o benefit_n or_o the_o effect_n of_o this_o kingdom_n of_o grace_n righteousness_n peace_n and_o joy_n in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 14.17_o ghost_n rom._n 14.17_o that_o be_v peace_n joy_n happiness_n light_n the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n begin_v indeed_o here_o but_o make_v perfect_a in_o heaven_n or_o in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o glory_n whereby_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o this_o kingdom_n be_v not_o earthly_a but_o spiritual_a and_o heavenly_a 18.6.36_o heavenly_a joh._n 18.6.36_o which_o be_v the_o part_n of_o the_o kingly_a office_n of_o christ_n two_o vocation_n and_o judgement_n vocation_n or_o call_n by_o the_o word_n of_o truth_n and_o that_o double_a 1._o whereby_o in_o general_a christ_n invit_v all_o man_n indifferent_o to_o the_o embrace_v of_o his_o gospel_n have_v appoint_v the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n to_o that_o end_n and_o purpose_n 22.14_o purpose_n mat._n 22.14_o 2._o special_a whereby_o by_o the_o labour_n of_o his_o minister_n he_o do_v effectual_o illuminate_v and_o call_v unto_o the_o knowledge_n of_o himself_o the_o elect_a by_o the_o inward_a operation_n of_o his_o spirit_n in_o his_o time_n appoint_v 8.30_o appoint_v rom._n 8.30_o the_o other_o part_n of_o his_o kingly_a office_n be_v judgement_n 5.17_o judgement_n joh._n 5.17_o which_o he_o exercise_v after_o two_o manner_n of_o way_n 1._o in_o this_o life_n both_o towards_o the_o elect_a partly_o in_o justify_v they_o or_o absolve_a they_o from_o their_o sin_n which_o be_v the_o office_n of_o a_o judge_n partly_o by_o defend_v they_o against_o all_o kind_n of_o enemy_n as_o also_o towards_o the_o reprobate_n afflict_v they_o with_o temporal_a punishment_n or_o else_o kill_v they_o with_o the_o word_n and_o moreover_o by_o cast_v forth_o superstition_n and_o bridle_v the_o fury_n of_o satan_n and_o ungodly_a man_n 110.12_o man_n psal_n 110.12_o 2._o in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v by_o summon_v both_o of_o they_o before_o his_o tribunal_n seat_n and_o give_v sentence_n according_a to_o his_o word_n 3._o by_o glorify_v his_o elect_a and_o adiudging_a the_o wicked_a to_o eternal_a punishment_n see_v the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n be_v eternal_a psal_n 45.7_o etc._n 45.7_o mat._n 16.27_o &_o 25.31.32_o etc._n etc._n why_o be_v it_o say_v that_o in_o the_o last_o day_n 1._o cor._n 15.24_o he_o shall_v render_v up_o the_o kingdom_n to_o god_n even_o the_o father_n not_o because_o he_o shall_v utter_o deprive_v himself_o of_o his_o kingdom_n but_o because_o that_o the_o manner_n of_o administration_n which_o christ_n use_v for_o the_o gather_n and_o preserve_v of_o his_o church_n in_o this_o world_n shall_v then_o cease_v what_o thing_n be_v contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o office_n of_o christ_n 1._o the_o error_n of_o stancarus_n who_o refer_v those_o thing_n which_o belong_v to_o the_o whole_a person_n as_o to_o be_v mediator_n to_o the_o humane_a nature_n apart_o and_o of_o osiander_n who_o ascribe_v the_o office_n of_o a_o mediator_n to_o the_o divinity_n alone_o 2._o the_o error_n of_o the_o papist_n concern_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o pope_n of_o the_o church_n of_o counsel_n in_o devise_v new_a article_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o expound_v of_o scripture_n and_o bring_v in_o man_n tradition_n into_o the_o church_n the_o same_o man_n error_n concern_v the_o merit_n of_o work_n satisfaction_n and_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n substitute_v into_o the_o room_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o the_o priesthood_n and_o sacrifice_n wherein_o most_o blasphemous_o they_o say_v they_o offer_v up_o christ_n for_o the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a and_o of_o invocation_n and_o intercession_n of_o saint_n 3._o the_o error_n of_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n of_o christ_n his_o vicarship_n whereof_o he_o have_v no_o need_n 4._o the_o error_n of_o the_o jew_n who_o dream_n of_o christ_n his_o earthly_a kingdom_n the_o three_o common_a place_n concern_v the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o what_o thing_n in_o the_o scripture_n be_v this_o name_n spirit_n attribute_v sometime_o to_o thing_n create_v sometime_o to_o the_o creator_n whence_o we_o may_v make_v a_o double_a spirit_n one_o create_v another_o uncreated_a but_o yet_o by_o proportion_n because_o the_o word_n spirit_n do_v principal_o agree_v to_o the_o creator_n and_o to_o the_o thing_n create_v less_o principal_o when_o it_o be_v attribute_v to_o the_o creature_n it_o be_v use_v two_o way_n sometime_o it_o signify_v the_o substance_n sometime_o the_o quality_n the_o substance_n either_o bodily_a but_o by_o a_o metaphor_n as_o john_n 3.8_o the_o spirit_n that_o be_v the_o wind_n blow_v where_o it_o list_v or_o else_o spiritual_o and_o that_o either_o the_o soul_n as_o psal_n 33.6_o into_o thy_o hand_n o_o lord_n i_o commend_v my_o spirit_n that_o be_v my_o soul_n act._n 7.59_o lord_n jesu_n receive_v my_o spirit_n or_o else_o the_o angel_n and_o those_o either_o good_a heb._n 1.14_o the_o angel_n be_v call_v minister_a spirit_n or_o else_o as_o luke_n 11.26_o the_o unclean_a spirit_n take_v to_o himself_o seven_o other_o spirit_n worse_o than_o himself_o when_o it_o signify_v a_o quality_n it_o be_v use_v sometime_o for_o the_o opinion_n and_o affection_n as_o math._n 5.3_o bless_a be_v the_o poor_a in_o spirit_n or_o else_o for_o the_o breathe_n and_o motion_n of_o the_o mind_n whether_o it_o be_v good_a which_o proceed_v from_o the_o good_a spirit_n of_o god_n or_o evil_a which_o be_v stir_v up_o by_o the_o evil_a and_o unclean_a spirit_n as_o also_o from_o our_o own_o evil_a will_n and_o hence_o it_o be_v that_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n be_v call_v the_o spirit_n but_o by_o a_o metonymy_n as_o when_o elizeus_fw-la say_v let_v thy_o spirit_n be_v double_a upon_o i_o 2._o king_n 2.9_o and_o when_o god_n say_v unto_o moses_n num._n 11.17_o i_o will_v take_v of_o thy_o spirit_n and_o give_v it_o to_o the_o elder_n and_o that_o either_o in_o special_a as_o esa_n 11.2_o the_o spirit_n of_o wisdom_n for_o the_o gift_n of_o wisdom_n infuse_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n etc._n etc._n ephes_n 1.17_o the_o spirit_n of_o meekness_n for_o meekness_n which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n infuse_v into_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o faithful_a so_o the_o spirit_n of_o faith_n 2._o corint_fw-la 4.17_o and_o the_o spirit_n of_o love_n 2._o tim._n 1.7_o so_o on_o the_o contrary_a the_o spirit_n of_o covetousness_n the_o spirit_n of_o giddiness_n the_o spirit_n of_o drunkenness_n esa_n 10.14_o the_o spirit_n of_o slumber_n of_o fornication_n 4.12_o fornication_n esa_n 29.10_o hos_fw-la 4.12_o be_v use_v for_o those_o vice_n or_o else_o in_o general_a all_o the_o gift_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o those_o especial_o which_o in_o time_n pass_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v bestow_v upon_o the_o believer_n for_o the_o confirmation_n of_o the_o heavenly_a doctrine_n 11.4_o doctrine_n 2._o cor._n 11.4_o beside_o this_o word_n spirit_n signify_v a_o quality_n when_o it_o be_v oppose_v against_o the_o flesh_n and_o again_o it_o signify_v another_o quality_n when_o it_o be_v oppose_v to_o the_o letter_n what_o do_v the_o spirit_n signify_v then_o when_o it_o be_v oppose_v to_o the_o flesh_n it_o signify_v the_o grace_n of_o regeneration_n that_o be_v whatsoever_o in_o man_n either_o the_o mind_n or_o the_o will_n or_o in_o the_o affection_n be_v regenerate_v and_o renew_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o gal._n 5.17_o the_o flesh_n lu_v against_o the_o spirit_n and_o the_o spirit_n against_o the_o flesh_n now_o the_o flesh_n be_v oppose_v against_o the_o spirit_n signify_v whatsoever_o be_v not_o as_o yet_o regenerate_v in_o we_o to_o wit_n the_o proneness_n of_o the_o affection_n and_o carnal_a quality_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o sin_n 3.6_o sin_n joh._n 3.6_o which_o strive_v against_o the_o spirit_n so_o that_o one_o and_o the_o self_n same_o faithful_a man_n so_o long_o as_o he_o live_v here_o may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v both_o flesh_n and_o spirit_n as_o paul_n show_v by_o his_o own_o example_n 7._o example_n rom._n 7._o but_o what_o do_v the_o word_n spirit_n signify_v when_o it_o be_v oppose_v to_o the_o letter_n it_o signify_v the_o power_n and_o efficacy_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n engrave_v in_o our_o heart_n the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n and_o by_o that_o mean_v the_o law_n of_o god_n itself_o and_o bow_v our_o heart_n to_o the_o obedience_n thereof_o as_o it_o be_v 2._o cor._n 3.6_o the_o letter_n kill_v but_o the_o spirit_n give_v life_n that_o be_v the_o bare_a law_n consider_v without_o christ_n without_o the_o operation_n and_o efficacy_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n kill_v by_o the_o corruption_n of_o our_o nature_n but_o the_o gospel_n by_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n which_o it_o have_v join_v with_o it_o give_v life_n sometime_o also_o paul_n call_v the_o external_a sign_n in_o the_o ceremony_n the_o letter_n be_v
and_o examine_v so_o as_o all_o man_n may_v understand_v that_o it_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o god_n and_o true_a according_a to_o the_o apostle_n precept_n to_o walk_v by_o the_o same_o rule_n or_o canon_n phil._n 3.16_o that_o we_o shall_v walk_v after_o the_o same_o rule_n how_o many_o book_n be_v there_o of_o the_o old_a testament_n the_o ancient_a hebrew_n to_o who_o as_o the_o apostle_n plain_o write_v be_v commit_v rom._n 3.2_o the_o oracle_n of_o god_n and_o also_o the_o jew_n do_v receive_v at_o this_o day_n 24._o book_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n as_o canonical_a and_o of_o undoubted_a authority_n which_o they_o call_v esrim_a veorba_fw-la of_o the_o number_n of_o 24._o book_n how_o do_v they_o divide_v those_o 24._o book_n 1._o into_o four_o class_n or_o rank_n the_o first_o they_o call_v thorah_n the_o law_n or_o doctrine_n and_o to_o this_o rank_n they_o assign_v the_o five_o book_n of_o moses_n genesis_n exodus_fw-la leviticus_fw-la number_n and_o deuteronomie_n which_o the_o greek_n call_v the_o pentateuch_n which_o be_v the_o second_o rank_n it_o be_v call_v nebijm_n reschonim_n that_o be_v of_o the_o former_a prophet_n and_o be_v contain_v in_o four_o book_n josuah_n judge_n samuel_n and_o the_o king_n which_o be_v the_o three_o it_o be_v call_v nebijm_n acharonim_n that_o be_v of_o the_o latter_a prophet_n and_o contain_v four_o book_n esaias_n jeremie_n ezechiel_n and_o the_o book_n of_o the_o twelve_o small_a prophet_n which_o be_v the_o four_o it_o be_v call_v sepher_n ketubim_n that_o be_v the_o book_n of_o holy_a writer_n and_o contain_v eleven_o book_n chronicle_n psalm_n proverb_n of_o solomon_n job_n ruth_n ecclesiastes_n of_o solomon_n lamentation_n of_o jeremie_n song_n of_o song_n ester_n daniel_n esdras_n and_o nehemias_n which_o two_o last_n be_v reckon_v for_o one_o all_o these_o book_n if_o they_o be_v reckon_v together_o make_v four_o and_o twenty_o now_o that_o some_o man_n reckon_v only_o two_o and_o twenty_o that_o come_v to_o pass_v thus_o because_o they_o reckon_v the_o book_n of_o ruth_n with_o the_o book_n of_o job_n and_o the_o lamentation_n of_o jeremie_n with_o his_o prophecy_n as_o one_o book_n be_v there_o add_v to_o these_o canonical_a book_n any_o other_o book_n there_o be_v add_v certain_a writing_n call_v apocrypha_fw-la as_o if_o you_o will_v say_v cover_v secret_a or_o hide_a because_o in_o old_a time_n they_o be_v not_o produce_v public_o in_o the_o church_n to_o prove_v any_o article_n of_o faith_n but_o only_o to_o reform_v manner_n have_v the_o book_n call_v apocrypha_fw-la equal_v authority_n with_o those_o call_v canonical_a in_o no_o case_n because_o they_o be_v neither_o write_v by_o prophet_n nor_o apostle_n neither_o be_v we_o to_o believe_v they_o for_o themselves_o neither_o do_v the_o efficacy_n force_n and_o majesty_n of_o god_n spirit_n shine_v in_o they_o as_o it_o do_v in_o the_o canonical_a and_o in_o they_o there_o be_v some_o thing_n which_o be_v clean_o contrary_a unto_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n neither_o be_v they_o ever_o give_v to_o the_o jew_n to_o who_o notwithstanding_o be_v commit_v the_o oracle_n of_o god_n because_o they_o be_v not_o extant_a write_v in_o the_o hebrew_n tongue_n and_o their_o authorititie_n be_v ever_o doubtful_a in_o the_o church_n and_o it_o be_v doubt_v of_o the_o author_n of_o they_o into_o how_o many_o part_n be_v the_o new_a testament_n divide_v into_o four_o part_n the_o first_o contain_v the_o four_o gospel_n namely_o of_o matthew_n mark_v luke_n and_o john_n the_o second_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n write_v by_o luke_n the_o three_o the_o epistle_n of_o the_o apostle_n fourteen_o of_o paul_n three_o of_o john_n two_o of_o peter_n of_o james_n one_o and_o one_o of_o jude_n james_n his_o brother_n the_o four_o the_o revelation_n of_o john_n how_o do_v the_o writing_n of_o the_o prophet_n differ_v from_o the_o apostle_n nothing_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o doctrine_n for_o the_o same_o faith_n and_o doctrine_n of_o manner_n be_v teach_v in_o they_o 5.46_o they_o john_n 5.46_o but_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o time_n for_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o prophet_n contain_v prophecy_n of_o christ_n to_o come_v but_o the_o apostle_n writing_n contain_v the_o history_n of_o christ_n now_o exhibit_v and_o show_v the_o accomplishment_n of_o those_o prophecy_n in_o narration_n and_o application_n whereupon_o the_o old_a testament_n may_v be_v call_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o new_a as_o the_o new_a the_o accomplishment_n of_o the_o old_a and_o as_o the_o old_a testament_n give_v credit_n to_o the_o new_a even_o so_o the_o new_a testament_n give_v credit_n to_o the_o old_a and_o christ_n compare_v the_o prophet_n doctrine_n to_o seed_n time_n the_o apostle_n to_o harvest_n and_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v obscure_o shadow_v out_o in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o prophet_n be_v more_o clear_o and_o abundant_o unfold_v in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o apostle_n 10.1_o apostle_n mat._n 13.16_o 1._o cor._n 10.11_o 2._o cor._n 3.13.18_o heb._n 10.1_o after_o that_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v add_v to_o the_o old_a be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n make_v more_o perfect_a no_o for_o when_o there_o be_v no_o mo_z but_o only_o the_o five_o book_n of_o moses_n they_o be_v sufficient_a to_o these_o the_o prophet_n be_v add_v as_o interpreter_n therefore_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v perfect_a and_o sufficient_a in_o regard_n of_o the_o sense_n although_o not_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o word_n and_o by_o the_o add_v of_o the_o new_a it_o be_v not_o make_v more_o perfect_a but_o more_o plain_a 15.3.4_o plain_a gen._n 3.15_o esa_n 53._o luk_n 16_o 29._o john_n 5.39_o 1._o cor._n 15.3.4_o how_o may_v it_o appear_v that_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o the_o apostle_n be_v indict_v of_o god_n partly_o by_o testimony_n partly_o by_o reason_n and_o by_o testimony_n partly_o inward_a partly_o outward_a the_o internal_a witness_n be_v one_o alone_o namely_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n inward_o speak_v to_o our_o heart_n and_o persuade_v we_o that_o those_o writing_n be_v inspire_v of_o god_n and_o seal_v they_o up_o in_o our_o heart_n eph._n 1.13_o and_o 1._o joh._n 2.20.27_o you_o have_v a_o ointment_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o this_o ointment_n teach_v you_o of_o all_o thing_n for_o whosoever_o be_v lead_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n can_v easy_o discern_v his_o power_n speak_v in_o the_o scripture_n as_o it_o be_v say_v 1._o cor._n 2.15_o the_o spiritual_a man_n discern_v all_o thing_n and_o esa_n 53.1_o the_o arm_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v not_o reveal_v to_o all_o man_n so_o luk._n 8.10_o and_o mat._n 13.11_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n be_v not_o reveal_v to_o all_o man_n but_o to_o those_o to_o who_o it_o be_v give_v of_o god_n and_o this_o testimony_n proper_o make_v for_o our_o confirmation_n and_o this_o alone_a do_v satisfy_v we_o be_v know_v of_o they_o alone_o that_o be_v convert_v unto_o christ_n 14.17_o christ_n joh._n 14.17_o which_o do_v evermore_o agree_v with_o the_o scripture_n without_o which_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o church_n can_v be_v of_o no_o weight_n with_o us._n for_o as_o none_o but_o god_n alone_o be_v a_o fit_a witness_n to_o testify_v of_o himself_o in_o his_o word_n even_o so_o the_o word_n never_o find_v credit_n in_o our_o heart_n till_o such_o time_n as_o it_o be_v seal_v up_o unto_o we_o by_o the_o inward_a testimony_n of_o the_o spirit_n the_o external_a testimony_n of_o the_o scripture_n that_o they_o proceed_v from_o god_n be_v to_o be_v take_v from_o the_o jew_n themselves_o who_o with_o one_o consent_n testify_v that_o those_o book_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v inspire_v by_o god_n and_o therefore_o do_v most_o careful_o read_v and_o preserve_v the_o same_o whereupon_o not_o without_o cause_n augustine_n call_v they_o the_o library_n and_o stationer_n of_o the_o christian_n who_o have_v afford_v unto_o we_o the_o read_n of_o the_o holy_a book_n the_o use_n whereof_o they_o themselves_o despise_v beside_o those_o jew_n do_v testify_v that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v famous_a for_o his_o wisdom_n and_o unspeakable_a miracle_n and_o that_o he_o be_v put_v to_o death_n of_o the_o people_n and_o rise_v again_o the_o three_o day_n josephus_n lib._n 18._o 4._o of_o the_o jew_n antiqu._n what_o reason_n have_v you_o to_o prove_v that_o the_o scripture_n come_v from_o god_n 1._o the_o antiquity_n of_o they_o for_o that_o which_o be_v most_o ancient_a be_v most_o true_a that_o be_v counterfeit_v which_o be_v late_a 2._o the_o event_n and_o accomplishment_n of_o the_o prophecy_n as_o of_o the_o messiah_n and_o saviour_n of_o mankind_n 3.15_o mankind_n gen_n 3.15_o the_o foretell_v unto_o abraham_n that_o his_o seed_n shall_v go_v into_o egypt_n their_o slavery_n in_o egypt_n and_o their_o deliverance_n which_o
asleep_a num._n 12.6_o at_o the_o last_o god_n stir_v up_o moses_n that_o he_o shall_v be_v the_o first_o penman_n of_o holy_a scripture_n yea_o and_o god_n himself_o write_v the_o ten_o commandment_n with_o his_o own_o finger_n do_v as_o it_o be_v consecrate_v the_o scripture_n 31.28_o scripture_n exod._n 31.28_o and_o give_v moses_n in_o charge_n to_o write_v the_o book_n of_o the_o law_n 4._o law_n exod._n 24_o 4._o afterward_o he_o deliver_v his_o word_n by_o the_o prophet_n 1.70_o prophet_n luk._n 1.70_o by_o christ_n god_n and_o man_n 1.1_o man_n heb._n 1.1_o last_o of_o all_o by_o the_o apostle_n of_o christ_n both_o by_o word_n and_o writing_n 1.11_o writing_n mat._n 28.19_o act._n 1.18_o rom._n 16.25_o reu._n 1.11_o but_o there_o be_v nothing_o deliver_v by_o word_n of_o mouth_n but_o that_o which_o be_v now_o extant_a in_o writing_n for_o although_o there_o be_v more_o thing_n speak_v and_o do_v then_o be_v write_v yet_o nothing_o contrary_a and_o these_o thing_n which_o be_v write_v be_v sufficient_a 20.31_o sufficient_a joh._n 20.31_o but_o wherefore_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n commit_v to_o writing_n 1._o by_o reason_n of_o the_o forgetfulness_n of_o man_n mind_n 2._o because_o man_n be_v so_o prone_a to_o fall_v into_o all_o kind_n of_o impiety_n whereby_o the_o work_n of_o god_n be_v corrupt_v 3._o because_o of_o man_n boldness_n to_o coin_v new_a kind_n of_o religion_n 4._o because_o of_o the_o subtlety_n of_o satan_n who_o transform_v himself_o into_o a_o angel_n of_o light_n and_o deceive_v the_o mind_n of_o man_n with_o counterfeit_a revelation_n in_o what_o tongue_n be_v either_o of_o the_o testament_n write_v the_o old_a testament_n be_v write_v by_o moses_n and_o the_o prophet_n in_o the_o hebrew_n tongue_n because_o that_o be_v the_o language_n of_o the_o people_n of_o god_n to_o who_o especial_o it_o do_v belong_v but_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v write_v by_o the_o evangelist_n and_o apostle_n in_o the_o greek_a tongue_n because_o that_o language_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o greek_a empire_n which_o go_v before_o the_o roman_a be_v almost_o in_o use_n among_o all_o nation_n and_o be_v more_o fit_a for_o the_o spread_a of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n through_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o therefore_o the_o hebrew_n text_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n and_o not_o the_o greek_a and_o the_o greek_a text_n in_o the_o new_a be_v authentical_a and_o not_o the_o latin_a or_o any_o other_o ought_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v propound_v to_o all_o christian_n in_o their_o own_o native_a tongue_n questionless_a because_o christ_n himself_o teach_v in_o their_o native_a tongue_n 4.17_o tongue_n luk._n 4.17_o and_o the_o apostle_n teach_v the_o grecian_n and_o other_o nation_n not_o in_o the_o hebrew_n but_o the_o greek_a tongue_n and_o they_o teach_v every_o nation_n in_o their_o own_o native_a language_n 2.11_o language_n act._n 2.11_o be_v the_o scripture_n manifest_a or_o be_v it_o obscure_a it_o be_v manifest_a if_o you_o regard_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o salvation_n as_o the_o article_n of_o faith_n the_o precept_n of_o the_o decalogue_n hence_o it_o be_v call_v a_o lantern_n 1.19_o lantern_n psa_fw-la 119.105_o &_o 2._o pet._n 1.19_o to_o those_o who_o mind_n god_n do_v open_a 24.45_o open_a luk._n 24.45_o but_o it_o be_v obscure_a to_o those_o which_o be_v blind_a and_o to_o all_o that_o perish_v who_o mind_n the_o god_n of_o this_o world_n have_v blind_v 4.3.4_o blind_v cor._n 4.3.4_o but_o it_o be_v not_o always_o obscure_a to_o the_o elect_a 16.13_o elect_a joh._n 16.13_o and_o only_o in_o part_n 1._o that_o they_o shall_v not_o too_o much_o rely_v upon_o their_o own_o wit_n but_o shall_v seek_v the_o understanding_n of_o it_o at_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n by_o prayer_n 2._o that_o they_o may_v be_v stir_v up_o to_o a_o more_o careful_a study_n of_o the_o same_o 3._o that_o they_o may_v make_v more_o account_n of_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n whereby_o they_o be_v teach_v and_o therefore_o stand_v in_o need_n to_o have_v it_o expound_v 29.18_o expound_v prou._n 29.18_o by_o the_o example_n of_o christ_n 4.17_o christ_n luk._n 4.17_o and_o of_o philip_n 8.31.35_o philip_n act._n 8.31.35_o what_o be_v the_o interpretation_n of_o holy_a scripture_n it_o be_v the_o unfolding_n of_o the_o true_a and_o natural_a sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n &_o the_o application_n of_o it_o unto_o the_o manifest_a use_n of_o the_o church_n 5.31_o church_n 1._o cor._n 14.4_o &_o 5.31_o which_o paul_n call_v prophesy_v 12.6_o prophesy_v rom._n 12.6_o peter_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o resolution_n of_o it_o 1.20_o it_o 2._o pet._n 1.20_o for_o the_o word_n of_o god_n fond_o understand_v be_v not_o the_o word_n of_o god_n say_v theodoret_n whence_o must_v we_o fetch_v the_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n not_o out_o of_o every_o private_a man_n brain_n and_o forestall_a opinion_n 1.20_o opinion_n 2._o pet._n 1.20_o but_o it_o be_v to_o be_v teach_v out_o of_o the_o text_n itself_o that_o be_v by_o observe_v those_o thing_n that_o go_v before_o and_o follow_v after_o and_o compare_v that_o place_n with_o other_o place_n of_o scripture_n what_o must_v be_v the_o rule_n of_o interpret_n only_o one_o namely_o the_o analogy_n of_o faith_n 12.6_o faith_n rom._n 12.6_o which_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o constant_a and_o perpetual_a sense_n of_o scripture_n expound_v in_o the_o manifest_a place_n of_o scripture_n and_o agreeable_a to_o the_o apostle_n creed_n ten_o commandment_n the_o lord_n prayer_n and_o general_a sentence_n and_o axiom_n of_o every_o main_a point_n of_o divinity_n what_o be_v the_o use_n of_o holy_a scripture_n 2._o tim._n 3.16_o the_o whole_a scripture_n be_v give_v of_o god_n by_o inspiration_n and_o be_v profitable_a for_o doctrine_n for_o reprehension_n for_o correction_n for_o instruction_n in_o righteousness_n and_o for_o exhortation_n 15.4_o exhortation_n rom._n 15.4_o o●_n consolation_n 14.3_o consolation_n 1._o cor._n 14.3_o that_o be_v for_o doctrine_n or_o confirmation_n of_o true_a opinion_n for_o reprehension_n of_o error_n for_o correction_n of_o manner_n instruction_n of_o life_n in_o righteousness_n for_o comfort_n in_o affliction_n that_o the_o man_n of_o god_n may_v be_v perfect_a and_o furnish_v for_o every_o good_a work_n what_o shall_v we_o answer_v to_o that_o say_n of_o augustine_n i_o will_v not_o believe_v the_o gospel_n unless_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n move_v i_o that_o augustine_n speak_v of_o himself_o as_o yet_o not_o convert_v unto_o the_o faith_n neither_o be_v it_o any_o marvel_n that_o those_o which_o be_v not_o as_o yet_o convert_v be_v move_v with_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o authority_n of_o man_n therefore_o his_o meaning_n be_v that_o the_o church_n be_v as_o it_o be_v a_o 〈◊〉_d a_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d introduction_n whereby_o we_o be_v prepare_v to_o give_v credit_n to_o the_o scripture_n what_o thing_n be_v contrary_a to_o the_o scripture_n 1._o the_o error_n of_o the_o sadducee_n which_o only_o receive_v the_o five_o book_n of_o moses_n which_o cause_v christ_n to_o confute_v their_o denial_n of_o the_o resurrection_n out_o of_o moses_n mat._n 22.31_o 2._o of_o certain_a anabaptist_n who_o reject_v the_o book_n of_o job_n as_o a_o feign_a tragical_a comedy_n yea_o the_o song_n of_o song_n and_o ecclesiaste_n as_o if_o the_o one_o teach_v epicurism_n the_o other_o be_v a_o wanton_a love_n ballad_n yet_o for_o job_n we_o have_v his_o country_n and_o condition_n set_v down_o in_o the_o beginning_n and_o end_n of_o his_o book_n which_o argue_v no_o fiction_n and_o beside_o he_o be_v mention_v by_o ezechiel_n cap._n 14.14_o and_o jam._n cap._n 5.11_o and_o paul_n 1._o cor._n 3.19_o and_o for_o ecclesiastes_n it_o rather_o deter_v from_o pleasure_n in_o that_o it_o argue_v all_o pleasure_n of_o vanity_n and_o judge_v they_o fool_n who_o rest_n upon_o they_o as_o on_o the_o contrary_a it_o make_v felicity_n to_o consist_v in_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n and_o keep_v his_o commandment_n cap._n 1.2_o &_o 7.3.8.12.11.9_o and_o the_o whole_a twelve_o chapter_n as_o for_o that_o of_o the_o soul_n immortality_n cap._n 3.19_o it_o be_v mean_v not_o that_o solomon_n so_o think_v but_o that_o corrupt_a reason_n so_o judge_v as_o for_o the_o song_n of_o song_n if_o it_o be_v mean_v of_o pharaoh_n daughter_n or_o some_o sunamite_n damosel_n the_o comparison_n cite_v cap._n 4.1.7.2_o be_v monstrous_a and_o albeit_o the_o name_n of_o god_n be_v not_o mention_v in_o that_o book_n yet_o find_v we_o equivalent_a and_o more_o fit_a name_n for_o that_o purpose_n as_o brother_n friend_n spouse_n belove_v that_o it_o may_v appear_v that_o the_o mystical_a spouse_n of_o solomon_n be_v here_o describe_v i_o mean_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n 3._o the_o heresy_n of_o manicheus_fw-la valentinus_n martion_n and_o other_o
deny_v the_o holy_a scripture_n to_o be_v indict_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o of_o other_o reject_v certain_a writing_n of_o holy_a scripture_n 4_o the_o error_n of_o the_o papist_n which_o be_v manifold_a for_o they_o hold_v that_o the_o authority_n and_o certainty_n of_o scripture_n depend_v upon_o the_o determination_n of_o the_o church_n that_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o authentical_a but_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n and_o that_o it_o be_v not_o manifest_a that_o the_o scripture_n proceed_v from_o god_n but_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o church_n which_o error_n be_v most_o absurd_a for_o if_o truth_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o pleasure_n and_o judgement_n of_o man_n the_o conscience_n be_v make_v doubtful_a of_o their_o salvation_n and_o the_o same_o error_n be_v confute_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o apostle_n ephes_n 2.20_o where_o the_o apostle_n affirm_v that_o the_o church_n lean_v upon_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n which_o foundation_n he_o call_v not_o the_o very_a person_n of_o the_o apostle_n but_o their_o doctrine_n for_o although_o the_o church_n shall_v by_o her_o judgement_n approve_v the_o scripture_n yet_o do_v she_o not_o make_v of_o that_o which_o be_v uncertain_a and_o doubtful_a certain_a and_o authentical_a but_o do_v by_o her_o judgement_n subscribe_v to_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n and_o do_v embrace_v it_o as_o proceed_n from_o god_n moreover_o they_o account_v the_o apocrypha_fw-la book_n for_o canonical_a they_o prattle_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v imperfect_a and_o obscure_a that_o the_o read_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v hurtful_a to_o the_o church_n that_o it_o be_v the_o matter_n of_o contention_n that_o matter_n of_o controversy_n can_v be_v decide_v by_o scripture_n alone_o that_o it_o have_v a_o nose_n of_o wax_n they_o affirm_v that_o power_n to_o interpret_v and_o give_v the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n belong_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n they_o match_v the_o writing_n of_o father_n bishop_n and_o counsel_n with_o the_o scripture_n they_o take_v away_o from_o the_o common_a people_n the_o writing_n of_o their_o father_n last_o will_v and_o testament_n and_o post_v they_o over_o to_o dumb_a idol_n as_o to_o layman_n book_n clean_o contrary_a to_o the_o commandment_n of_o christ_n joh._n 5.39_o search_v the_o scripture_n last_o they_o account_v the_o old_a latin_a translation_n as_o authentical_a the_o five_o common_a place_n of_o creation_n what_o be_v the_o signification_n of_o this_o word_n to_o create_v in_o the_o scripture_n it_o be_v peculiar_a because_o the_o reason_n of_o man_n know_v not_o how_o any_o thing_n shall_v be_v create_v of_o nothing_o for_o david_n kimchi_n affirm_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o this_o word_n to_o create_v most_o proper_o be_v affirm_v for_o every_o thing_n which_o be_v bring_v from_o no_o be_v to_o a_o be_v as_o gen._n 1.1_o but_o secundary_o and_o yet_o proper_o it_o signify_v to_o bring_v a_o form_n create_v of_o nothing_o to_o a_o matter_n preexi_v without_o alteration_n 1.21.27_o alteration_n gen._n 1.21.27_o whereupon_o damascene_fw-la say_v lib._n 2._o cap._n 5._o that_o god_n make_v all_o thing_n of_o nothing_o some_o thing_n indeed_o immedidiat_o but_o other_o some_o by_o mean_n which_o be_v a_o part_n of_o divine_a omnipotence_n therefore_o the_o word_n to_o create_v be_v attribute_v to_o god_n alone_o in_o the_o scripture_n either_o in_o the_o work_n of_o creation_n or_o else_o by_o a_o borrow_a speech_n in_o thing_n that_o be_v of_o no_o less_o virtue_n and_o power_n then_o the_o very_a work_n of_o creation_n 51.12_o creation_n esa_n 41.20_o jer._n 31.22_o psal_n 51.12_o for_o this_o cause_n these_o word_n differ_v to_o beget_v to_o create_v to_o make_v for_o to_o beget_v be_v to_o bring_v forth_o something_o of_o his_o own_o substance_n like_a unto_o itself_o according_a to_o the_o essence_n but_o to_o create_v be_v to_o make_v something_o of_o nothing_o diverse_a from_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o creator_n and_o this_o word_n to_o make_v be_v apply_v to_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v make_v of_o some_o matter_n but_o yet_o it_o be_v restrain_v by_o the_o circumstance_n of_o the_o text_n to_o the_o property_n of_o creation_n 1.20_o creation_n gen._n 1.25.31_o rom._n 1.20_o what_o be_v creation_n it_o be_v a_o external_a and_o indivisible_a work_n of_o jehovah_n elohim_n alone_o that_o be_v of_o the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n whereby_o by_o his_o word_n power_n and_o commandment_n alone_o he_o have_v create_v all_o thing_n out_o of_o himself_o that_o be_v the_o substance_n of_o all_o thing_n be_v sever_v from_o his_o own_o essence_n to_o the_o end_n that_o his_o infinite_a wisdom_n goodness_n and_o power_n may_v be_v make_v manifest_a 1.20_o manifest_a act._n 17.24_o rom._n 1.20_o prove_v it_o by_o some_o testimony_n 1_o the_o very_a history_n of_o the_o creation_n as_o it_o be_v set_v down_o by_o moses_n gen._n 1._o be_v a_o most_o ample_a witness_n of_o it_o 2._o psal_n 33.6_o by_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v the_o heaven_n create_v and_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o his_o mouth_n all_o the_o power_n and_o host_n of_o they_o and_o in_o the_o same_o psalm_n vers_fw-la 9_o he_o speak_v and_o they_o be_v make_v he_o command_v and_o they_o be_v all_o create_v again_o psal_n 19.1_o the_o heaven_n declare_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o the_o firmament_n sound_v forth_o or_o celebrate_v the_o work_n of_o his_o hand_n mal._n 2.10_o have_v not_o one_o god_n create_v we_o job._n 9.8_o who_o alone_o do_v stretch_v out_o the_o heaven_n 1._o cor._n 8.6_o we_o have_v but_o one_o god_n the_o father_n of_o who_o be_v all_o thing_n why_o be_v the_o creation_n ascribe_v in_o the_o creed_n to_o the_o father_n alone_o not_o that_o the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n shall_v be_v exclude_v from_o the_o effect_n and_o praise_n of_o that_o work_n who_o in_o that_o same_o work_n manifest_o not_o as_o instrument_n but_o as_o efficient_n equal_o and_o inseparable_o wrought_v together_o 1.1.2_o together_o job_n 1_o 3._o col._n 1.16_o gen._n 1.1.2_o but_o by_o way_n of_o excellency_n that_o the_o decree_n of_o this_o work_n and_o first_o beginning_n of_o it_o may_v be_v give_v to_o the_o father_n because_o the_o father_n be_v the_o fountain_n and_o beginning_n not_o temporal_a but_o original_a of_o the_o whole_a deity_n by_o who_o all_o thing_n be_v make_v further_o that_o there_o may_v appear_v in_o the_o church_n some_o external_a difference_n whereby_o the_o father_n may_v be_v distinguish_v from_o the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o as_o basill_n say_v in_o his_o book_n entreat_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n cap._n 16._o the_o father_n be_v the_o first_o principal_a cause_n of_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v make_v the_o son_n the_o instrumental_a cause_n the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o perfect_a cause_n what_o be_v the_o move_a or_o impellent_fw-fr cause_n of_o the_o creation_n of_o all_o thing_n the_o infinite_a goodness_n of_o god_n join_v with_o infinite_a wisdom_n which_o it_o please_v he_o to_o communicate_v and_o by_o communicate_v to_o reveal_v it_o because_o a_o good_a thing_n be_v apt_a to_o communicate_v itself_o and_o when_o do_v god_n begin_v to_o create_v in_o the_o very_a beginning_n of_o all_o thing_n and_o in_o the_o vety_n beginning_n of_o time_n that_o be_v then_o when_o the_o thing_n which_o now_o be_v begin_v to_o be_v for_o though_o all_o thing_n in_o the_o world_n be_v make_v in_o the_o son_n 1.16_o son_n col._n 1.16_o yet_o in_o this_o place_n this_o word_n beginning_n signify_v not_o the_o son_n but_o some_o certain_a beginning_n of_o time_n as_o also_o joh._n 1.1_o but_o whereof_o and_o whence_o be_v all_o thing_n make_v and_o produce_v of_o nothing_o this_o word_n be_v understand_v negative_o that_o be_v of_o no_o other_o matter_n that_o be_v before_o for_o this_o word_n of_o in_o this_o place_n signify_v not_o the_o material_a cause_n whereof_o any_o thing_n be_v make_v but_o the_o order_n as_o if_o a_o man_n shall_v say_v when_o as_o there_o be_v nothing_o before_o after_o that_o there_o be_v any_o thing_n it_o be_v make_v or_o else_o it_o signify_v the_o habitude_n or_o disposition_n of_o the_o material_a cause_n which_o be_v simple_o deny_v how_o prove_v you_o that_o 1._o because_o there_o be_v nothing_o from_o eternity_n except_v and_o beside_o god_n himself_o and_o whatsoever_o there_o be_v it_o be_v either_o the_o creator_n or_o else_o the_o creature_n but_o thing_n be_v not_o create_v out_o of_o the_o substance_n of_o god_n for_o than_o they_o shall_v be_v god_n or_o god_n wh●ch_o be_v very_o absurd_a therefore_o they_o be_v make_v of_o nothing_o 2._o god_n be_v almighty_a and_o therefore_o do_v not_o stand_v in_o need_n of_o some_o matter_n go_v before_o for_o this_o cause_n psal_n 33.9_o
trouble_v the_o church_n or_o else_o by_o the_o multitude_n power_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o adversary_n of_o our_o doctrine_n and_o by_o the_o flourish_a estate_n of_o the_o wicked_a and_o the_o prosperous_a success_n of_o all_o thing_n whereupon_o the_o prophet_n say_v my_o foot_n be_v almost_o move_v because_o i_o burn_v with_o zeal_n as_o concern_v the_o wicked_a behold_v the_o prosperity_n of_o the_o ungodly_a psal_n 73.2_o what_o remedy_n have_v the_o weak_a against_o this_o scandal_n if_o we_o call_v to_o mind_v the_o condition_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n and_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n if_o we_o meditate_v upon_o the_o heavenly_a doctrine_n and_o mark_v the_o ruin_n of_o the_o wicked_a and_o the_o bless_a end_n of_o the_o godly_a this_o the_o prophet_n teach_v we_o in_o that_o same_o psal_n v._o 16._o i_o muse_v say_v he_o that_o i_o may_v understand_v this_o but_o it_o be_v hard_o for_o i_o until_o i_o come_v into_o the_o sanctuary_n of_o god_n &_o consider_v their_o latter_a end_n so_o job_n contemn_v the_o prosperity_n of_o wicked_a man_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o his_o affliction_n burst_v forth_o into_o this_o speech_n job._n 19.25_o i_o know_v that_o my_o redeemer_n live_v and_o that_o i_o shall_v rise_v again_o at_o the_o last_o day_n what_o be_v that_o offence_n take_v which_o come_v from_o the_o devil_n when_o man_n do_v wretched_o abuse_v the_o fault_n and_o sin_n of_o the_o saint_n to_o encourage_v they_o to_o sin_n as_o i_o be_o the_o drunkenness_n of_o his_o father_n 9.2_o father_n gen._n 9.2_o orher_v the_o incest_n of_o lot_n 31._o lot_n gen._n 19.30_o 31._o david_n adultery_n and_o murder_n 15_o murder_n 2_o sam._n 12_o 2.3_o 15_o the_o perjury_n of_o peter_n 26.72.74_o peter_n math_n 26.72.74_o zacheus_n his_o extortion_n 13.8_o extortion_n luk._n 13.8_o &_o such_o like_a that_o they_o may_v without_o shame_n give_v themselves_o to_o all_o kind_n of_o wickedness_n and_o it_o be_v well_o call_v diabolical_a of_o the_o quality_n and_o not_o of_o the_o subject_n because_o it_o be_v use_v malicious_o to_o the_o disgrace_n of_o the_o father_n and_o the_o reproach_v of_o god_n and_o therefore_o ought_v above_o all_o the_o rest_n to_o be_v take_v heed_n of_o what_o be_v the_o three_o kind_n of_o offence_n you_o may_v call_v it_o a_o mix_a kind_n of_o offence_n that_o be_v partly_o give_v &_o partly_o take_v to_o wit_n when_o a_o man_n do_v use_v his_o christian_n liberty_n unreasonable_o or_o else_o when_o a_o man_n dally_v with_o the_o enemy_n of_o the_o truth_n yet_o this_o kind_n of_o offence_n seem_v to_o be_v more_o like_a to_o that_o which_o be_v give_v then_o that_o which_o be_v take_v for_o the_o avoid_v whereof_o this_o rule_n be_v to_o be_v observe_v we_o must_v do_v nothing_o without_o faith_n and_o against_o charity_n therefore_o paul_n 1._o cor._n 6.12_o and._n 10.23_o say_v all_o thing_n be_v lawful_a for_o i_o but_o all_o thing_n be_v not_o expedient_a and_o the_o say_n of_o clement_n they_o which_o do_v whatsoever_o be_v lawful_a for_o they_o do_v quick_o come_v to_o do_v that_o which_o be_v not_o lawful_a what_o be_v the_o end_n of_o offence_n the_o purpose_n of_o satan_n who_o stir_v up_o scandal_n be_v to_o draw_v man_n from_o the_o truth_n to_o establish_v error_n to_o corrupt_v good_a manner_n to_o waste_v the_o church_n to_o increase_v his_o kingdom_n to_o hinder_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n to_o harden_v and_o to_o destroy_v man_n but_o the_o purpose_n of_o god_n who_o decree_v they_o be_v to_o prove_v his_o own_o to_o manifest_v the_o reprobate_n that_o there_o may_v be_v make_v a_o manifest_a difference_n between_o the_o true_a worshipper_n of_o god_n and_o hypocrite_n 11.9_o hypocrite_n 1_o cor._n 11.9_o what_o be_v the_o use_n of_o this_o doctrine_n that_o our_o mind_n be_v confirm_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n against_o offence_n and_o our_o affection_n bring_v into_o order_n according_a to_o the_o direction_n of_o the_o law_n of_o god_n we_o may_v be_v sincere_a and_o without_o offence_n unto_o the_o day_n of_o christ_n full_a of_o the_o fruit_n of_o righteousness_n which_o be_v to_o the_o glory_n and_o praise_n of_o god_n through_o christ_n jesus_n what_o thing_n be_v contrary_a to_o a_o offence_n give_v honest_a example_n speech_n and_o deed_n which_o invite_v other_o to_o imitate_v they_o according_a to_o the_o commandement_fw-fr math._n 5.16_o let_v your_o light_n so_o shine_v before_o man_n that_o they_o see_v your_o good_a work_n may_v glorify_v your_o father_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n the_o five_o and_o thirty_o common_a place_n of_o prayer_n what_o mean_v you_o by_o the_o word_n prayer_n not_o after_o the_o manner_n of_o rhetorician_n a_o order_n of_o speech_n thorough_o labour_v by_o art_n which_o the_o grecian_n call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d but_o according_a to_o divinity_n a_o holy_a speech_n or_o talk_n with_o god_n not_o so_o much_o of_o the_o mouth_n as_o of_o the_o heart_n which_o also_o in_o other_o term_n we_o call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o call_v upon_o to_o request_v which_o be_v proper_o speak_v of_o he_o who_o be_v in_o danger_n desire_v the_o help_n of_o god_n with_o a_o cry_v out_o hereupon_o by_o a_o synecdoche_n it_o be_v take_v for_o the_o whole_a worship_n of_o god_n 22_o god_n act_n 2_o 21._o 1_o cor_n 1_o 2_o 2_o tim_fw-la 2_o 22_o also_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d prayer_n or_o entreat_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d supplication_n the_o scripture_n also_o allegorical_o or_o metaphorical_o call_v it_o the_o calf_n &_o fruit_n of_o the_o lip_n a_o sacrifice_n of_o praise_n incense_n and_o a_o sweet_a smell_n 〈◊〉_d smell_n ose_n 14_o 3_o psal_n 116.17_o &_o 141.2_o heb_fw-mi 13_o 15_o malach_n 1.11_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d what_o be_v prayer_n the_o greecian_o do_v thus_o define_v it_o damasc_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v prayer_n be_v a_o ascend_n of_o the_o mind_n towards_o god_n and_o a_o request_n of_o thing_n convenient_a of_o he_o by_o a_o translation_n take_v from_o burn_a offering_n unto_o prayer_n act._n 10.4_o thy_o prayer_n and_o thy_o alm_n 22_o alm_n act_n 2_o 21._o 1_o cor_n 1_o 2_o 2_o tim_fw-la 2_o 22_o be_v come_v up_o into_o remembrance_n before_o god_n or_o prayer_n be_v a_o holy_a meditation_n of_o thing_n pertain_v to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o our_o safety_n and_o a_o earnest_n wish_v and_o desire_v of_o the_o same_o proceed_v from_o a_o filial_a or_o sunnelike_a trust_n in_o god_n to_o the_o which_o for_o the_o most_o part_n thanksgiving_n be_v wont_a to_o be_v add_v of_o holy_a man_n for_o benefit_n receive_v from_o god_n or_o it_o be_v a_o ardent_a affection_n mount_v up_o to_o god_n whereby_o we_o do_v both_o ask_v and_o expect_v from_o god_n alone_o for_o christ_n sake_n gift_n spiritual_a and_o corporal_a according_a to_o his_o commandment_n and_o promise_n and_o also_o do_v give_v he_o thanks_o for_o gift_n receive_v or_o it_o be_v a_o ardent_a &_o earnest_n lay_v open_a of_o our_o hart_n before_o god_n whereby_o from_o faith_n in_o christ_n we_o do_v either_o request_n or_o entreat_v for_o any_o thing_n or_o do_v give_v thanks_o for_o benefit_n receive_v whether_o this_o be_v do_v with_o word_n or_o without_o word_n as_o with_o groan_n &_o figh_n alone_o whereby_o it_o be_v gather_v that_o the_o ten_o commandment_n the_o angel_n salutation_n &_o the_o rehearse_n of_o the_o creed_n be_v no_o prayer_n because_o in_o these_o nothing_o be_v ask_v of_o god_n though_o simple_a people_n use_v those_o as_o prayer_n of_o how_o many_o sort_n be_v prayer_n twofold_a in_o regard_n of_o circumstance_n public_a or_o solemn_a which_o be_v make_v in_o a_o public_a &_o ecclesiastical_a assembly_n &_o for_o the_o most_o part_n be_v wont_a to_o be_v vocal_a &_o it_o be_v the_o 2_o part_n of_o the_o ministry_n 3.1_o ministry_n 1_o king_n 8.41_o esr_n 7_o 23_o &_o 3.1_o and_o private_a which_o every_o one_o do_v use_n private_o either_o at_o home_n or_o abroad_o in_o secret_a corner_n of_o the_o hart_n as_o christ_n pray_v in_o the_o mountain_n 10.9_o mountain_n mark_v 6.46_o acts._n 10.9_o peter_n in_o the_o upper_a part_n of_o the_o house_n izack_n in_o the_o field_n daniel_n in_o the_o den_n &_o paul_n at_o the_o shore_n how_o many_o be_v the_o part_n or_o kind_n of_o prayer_n 〈◊〉_d well_o precamur_fw-la vel_fw-la deprecamur_fw-la aliquid_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d paul_n 1._o ti._n 2.1_o do_v reckon_v up_o 4_o which_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v a_o deprecation_n whereby_o we_o desire_v the_o turn_n away_o of_o some_o evil_a which_o either_o trouble_v we_o already_o or_o hang_v over_o our_o head_n of_o the_o verb_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o be_v to_o ask_v to_o pray_v as_o luk._n
virgin_n 2._o cor._n 2.11_o 1_o john_n 3.29_o of_o which_o marriage_n the_o brideman_n be_v the_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n the_o friend_n of_o the_o bridegroom_n be_v they_o 3.29_o they_o johu_n 3.29_o that_o according_a to_o the_o world_n allure_v the_o bride_n betroath_o she_o and_o bring_v she_o dress_v and_o adorn_v unto_o the_o bridegroom_n 2.11_o bridegroom_n 2._o cor_n 2.11_o 9_o 2.11_o exod_a 19_o 6._o reu_fw-fr 1.6_o 1_o pet._n 2_o 5_o 9_o 11_o the_o elect_a stock_n the_o royal_a priesthood_n the_o holy_a people_n the_o people_n who_o god_n challenge_v as_o peculiar_a to_o himself_o 12_o the_o communion_n of_o saint_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o spiritual_a participation_n of_o christ_n and_o all_o his_o benefit_n 3_o benefit_n 1._o joh_n 1_o 8_o 1_o cor_n 1_o 9_o ephes_n 4_o 4_o rom._n 12_o 5_o 13_o col_n 3_o and_o of_o the_o mutual_a communion_n of_o the_o gift_n of_o the_o same_o christ_n among_o the_o faithful_a be_v one_o heart_n and_o one_o soul_n 32_o soul_n acts._n 4_o 32_o 13_o a_o flock_n of_o sheep_n and_o the_o sheepfold_a of_o christ_n because_o it_o hear_v and_o follow_v his_o voice_n 14_o the_o world_n take_v in_o the_o better_a part_n 16_o part_n luk_n 12_o 32_o john_n 10_o 16_o because_o it_o be_v the_o most_o noble_a part_n of_o the_o world_n and_o that_o the_o whole_a state_n thereof_o may_v be_v oppose_v to_o one_o people_n 19_o people_n john_n 3_o 16_o 1_o john_n 2_o 2_o 2_o cor_n 5_o 19_o 15_o a_o floor_n 17_o floor_n luk._n 3_o 17_o because_o as_o in_o a_o floor_n the_o sheaf_n be_v gather_v with_o the_o straw_n and_o chaff_n together_o and_o after_o the_o thresh_a the_o wheat_n be_v discern_v from_o the_o chaff_n in_o the_o van_n so_o there_o be_v as_o well_o godly_a man_n as_o hypocrite_n assemble_v in_o the_o outward_a society_n of_o the_o church_n but_o straight_o way_n they_o be_v sever_v by_o the_o outward_a preach_v of_o the_o gospel_n as_o with_o a_o van_n 16_o the_o new_a jerusalem_n 12_o jerusalem_n gal._n 4_o 26_o reu_fw-fr 3_o 12_o and_o zion_n 6_o zion_n psalm_n 2_o 6_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n or_o of_o christ_n or_o of_o god_n 1._o 20._o 1._o mat_n 5_o 19_o 20._o because_o it_o be_v govern_v by_o god_n after_o a_o heavenly_a manner_n 2_o because_o the_o citizen_n thereof_o conteminng_a worldly_a thing_n aspire_v unto_o heavenly_a last_o of_o all_o it_o be_v also_o compare_v to_o a_o candlestick_n 1.20_o candlestick_n reu._n 1.20_o to_o a_o dove-house_n 60.8_o dove-house_n esa_n 60.8_o to_o a_o dove_n 6.8_o dove_n cant_n 2_o 2_o 14._o &_o 6.8_o namely_o because_o these_o verse_n of_o the_o dove_n do_v fit_o belong_v thereunto_o no_o gall_n she_o have_v yet_o groan_v much_o nor_o hurt_v she_o with_o her_o bill_n her_o talent_n harmless_a and_o her_o crop_n with_o clean_a corn_n do_v she_o fill_v to_o a_o small_a ship_n or_o boat_n 22_o boat_n luke_n 8_o 22_o because_o while_o it_o be_v on_o earth_n it_o be_v like_a to_o a_o boat_n which_o one_o while_n be_v carry_v on_o the_o sea_n with_o a_o calm_a &_o prosperous_a gale_n by_o and_o by_o the_o wind_n rise_v &_o the_o wave_n swell_v it_o be_v in_o danger_n who_o pilot_n be_v christ_n who_o waterman_n or_o mariner_n be_v the_o minister_n to_o a_o field_n 13.24_o field_n math._n 13.24_o and_o to_o a_o plough_v land_n 3.9_o land_n 1_o cor._n 3.9_o to_o a_o drag_v net_n contain_v fish_n good_a and_o bad_a 47._o bad_a math_n 13_o 47._o to_o one_o singular_a man_n 4.13_o man_n ephes_n 4.13_o to_o declare_v the_o unity_n thereof_o last_o to_o a_o glass_n in_o behold_v whereof_o the_o very_a angel_n do_v good_a acknowledge_v the_o manifold_a wisdom_n of_o god_n in_o the_o agreement_n and_o repugnant_a concord_n of_o so_o manifold_a a_o multitude_n 10_o multitude_n ephes_n 3_o 10_o why_o be_v it_o call_v a_o holy_a church_n 1_o because_o it_o be_v redeem_v cleanse_v justify_v and_o sanctify_v by_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n 91_o christ_n 1._o john_n 1_o 7_o ephes_n 5.25_o 26._o heb_fw-mi 91_o 2_o because_o receive_v that_o benefit_n by_o faith_n through_o the_o holy_a ghost_n it_o study_v holiness_n and_o righteousness_n by_o the_o which_o study_n the_o imperfect_a holiness_n thereof_o be_v daily_o increase_v but_o shall_v be_v perfect_v afterward_o in_o a_o other_o life_n 3.12_o life_n rom_n 8.1_o ephes_n 5_o 26_o 27_o phil_n 3.12_o all_o which_o be_v attribute_v to_o the_o church_n for_o the_o elect_v sake_n only_o 6.11_o only_o rom_n 1,7_o &_o 8_o 1._o 1_o cor._n 1.2_o &_o 6.11_o what_o be_v the_o final_a cause_n of_o the_o church_n the_o true_a worship_n of_o god_n for_o it_o be_v elect_v choose_a and_o ordain_v for_o the_o true_a service_n of_o god_n and_o to_o glorify_v god_n both_o in_o this_o life_n and_o in_o the_o life_n eternal_a also_o 9_o also_o 1._o pet._n 2_o 9_o but_o the_o end_n whereto_o the_o church_n endeavour_v be_v god_n in_o who_o presence_n there_o be_v fullnes_n of_o joy_n namely_o that_o heavenly_a inheritance_n which_o can_v neither_o perish_v nor_o be_v defile_v nor_o corrupt_v 4_o corrupt_v psal_n 16.20_o 1_o pet_n 1_o 4_o 2_o the_o very_a perfection_n and_o absolute_a finish_n of_o the_o church_n in_o that_o last_o day_n when_o all_o the_o elect_a shall_v be_v gather_v together_o from_o the_o four_o wind_n and_o then_o at_o last_o we_o shall_v all_o grow_v up_o in_o the_o unity_n of_o faith_n and_o acknowledgement_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n unto_o a_o perfect_a man_n and_o unto_o the_o measure_n of_o the_o age_n of_o the_o fullnes_n of_o christ_n ephes_n 4.13_o what_o be_v the_o effect_n or_o office_n of_o the_o church_n to_o hear_v the_o voice_n of_o her_o shepeheard_n to_o fly_v from_o the_o voice_n of_o a_o stranger_n to_o believe_v god_n word_n and_o to_o obey_v it_o to_o use_v the_o sacrament_n lawful_o to_o acknowledge_v to_o receive_v and_o to_o embrace_v only_a christ_n for_o the_o shephearde_n for_o the_o teacher_n for_o the_o head_n for_o the_o spouse_n and_o for_o the_o saviour_n &_o last_o to_o exercise_v the_o key_n receive_v from_o christ_n that_o be_v to_o keep_v diligent_o the_o ministry_n of_o god_n word_n 17_o word_n john_n 10.5_o 1_o cor_fw-la 11_o 23_o mat_n 16.19_o &_o 18.18_o john_n 20.23_o heb._n 13_o 17_o what_o be_v the_o fruit_n and_o use_n of_o the_o article_n of_o the_o church_n 1_o that_o we_o shall_v desire_v nothing_o more_o then_o to_o abide_v in_o it_o without_o which_o there_o be_v no_o salvation_n 2_o that_o we_o be_v assure_o persuade_v we_o be_v the_o citizen_n thereof_o shall_v nothing_o doubt_v of_o our_o salvation_n ground_v in_o christ_n from_o who_o we_o can_v no_o more_o be_v plukt_fw-mi they_o his_o member_n may_v be_v tear_v &_o rend_v a_o sunder_o 3_o that_o we_o may_v perceive_v that_o those_o promise_n perteine_a unto_o we_o salvation_n shall_v be_v in_o zion_n god_n will_v for_o ever_o abide_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o jerusalem_fw-la that_o be_v in_o the_o church_n whereof_o mount_n zion_n &_o jerusalem_n be_v tip_n in_o time_n past_a least_o at_o any_o time_n it_o shall_v be_v remove_v 46.6_o remove_v joel._n 2.32_o addi_fw-la 5.17_o psal_n 46.6_o what_o be_v the_o contrary_n to_o this_o doctrine_n 1_o the_o enemy_n of_o the_o church_n which_o now_o &_o then_o from_o satan_n camp_n break_v out_o who_o like_a tyrant_n by_o manifest_a strength_n like_o sophister_n by_o corruption_n of_o doctrine_n like_o hypocrite_n by_o superstition_n like_o epicure_n by_o leudnes_n of_o life_n do_v assault_n and_o fight_v against_o the_o church_n 2_o the_o error_n of_o the_o prelate_n which_o exclude_v from_o the_o church_n they_o that_o be_v new_o instruct_v &_o infant_n that_o be_v not_o yet_o enter_v in_o the_o sacrament_n 2._o which_o transform_v the_o church_n into_o a_o civil_a kingdom_n that_o require_v a_o secular_a arm_n and_o into_o the_o great_a monarchy_n of_o the_o world_n wherein_o the_o pope_n be_v chief_a ruler_n &_o governor_n over_o all_o person_n as_o well_o layman_n as_o clergyman_n over_o emperor_n &_o king_n who_o have_v authority_n in_o heaven_n &_o in_o earth_n &_o who_o be_v the_o universal_a b._n of_o the_o whole_a world_n 3._o which_o teach_v that_o the_o church_n have_v many_o head_n that_o christ_n indeed_o be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n triumphant_a but_o the_o pope_n of_o the_o church_n militant_a &_o which_o say_v that_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n to_o believe_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v over_o all_o church_n or_o as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o article_n of_o boniface_n the._n 8._o the_o great_a lord_n over_o all_o 4._o which_o tie_n the_o catholic_a church_n not_o to_o the_o word_n only_o but_o to_o a_o certain_a place_n namely_o to_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n to_o the_o pope_n &_o to_o the_o bishop_n &_o which_o make_v
before_o god_n have_v a_o cover_n on_o his_o head_n in_o which_o be_v granen_n the_o holiness_n of_o god_n that_o god_n may_v be_v please_v with_o they_o exod._n 28.6_o although_o it_o appear_v and_o that_o by_o ancient_a institution_n 1._o chron._n 24.2.3_o that_o there_o be_v two_o priest_n who_o in_o course_n do_v exercise_v the_o priesthood_n yet_o so_o as_o one_o be_v chief_a and_o the_o other_o next_o unto_o he_o as_o it_o be_v plain_a out_o of_o 1._o king_n 25.18_o and_o luke_n 3.2_o note_v we_o here_o that_o it_o be_v not_o unaduised_o do_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v never_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n give_v the_o name_n of_o priest_n or_o priesthood_n peculiarly_a to_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n for_o christ_n be_v make_v a_o priest_n for_o ever_o according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedech_n by_o the_o oath_n of_o god_n hebr._n 7.21_o have_v no_o companion_n of_o his_o priesthood_n neither_o leave_v he_o to_o his_o a_o priesthood_n but_o a_o ministry_n and_o that_o because_o there_o remain_v for_o we_o no_o such_o propitiatory_a sacrifice_n to_o be_v perform_v as_o that_o be_v which_o be_v procure_v by_o the_o priest_n in_o the_o law_n yet_o by_o a_o certain_a similitude_n as_o they_o who_o preach_v the_o gospel_n do_v kill_v with_o the_o spiritual_a sword_n and_o consecrate_v man_n to_o god_n they_o may_v be_v call_v priest_n as_o also_o sometime_o all_o the_o godlly_n be_v so_o call_v to_o who_o it_o be_v say_v if_o you_o will_v keep_v all_o my_o commandment_n you_o shall_v be_v unto_o i_o a_o kingdom_n of_o priest_n exod._n 19.6_o what_o be_v levites_n 7_o num._n 8_o 7_o they_o be_v inferior_a priest_n come_v from_o and_o call_v so_o of_o levi_n jacobs_n son_n by_o leah_n of_o who_o some_o serve_v under_o the_o priest_n in_o the_o tabernacle_n and_o after_o in_o the_o temple_n and_o they_o be_v purify_v by_o a_o holy_a water_n and_o sacrifice_n before_o the_o church_n 6.3.6_o church_n num._n 18_o 6.3.6_o do_v carry_v the_o tabernacle_n which_o be_v portable_a and_o other_o thing_n of_o use_n and_o do_v minister_v to_o the_o high_a priest_n as_o they_o sacrifice_v serve_v they_o in_o the_o whole_a administation_n of_o sacrifice_n but_o they_o have_v not_o authority_n to_o sacrifice_v 6.3.6_o sacrifice_v num._n 18_o 6.3.6_o and_o they_o themselves_o do_v pay_v tithe_n of_o their_o tithe_n to_o the_o priest_n 16.26_o priest_n num._n 16.26_o for_o this_o cause_n the_o deacon_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n proper_o so_o call_v be_v by_o the_o ancient_a compare_v with_o they_o but_o of_o these_o afterward_o david_n appoint_v holy_a singer_n treasurer_n for_o holy_a thing_n overseer_n and_o porter_n and_o these_o from_o twenty_o year_n till_o 50_o kill_v the_o sacrifice_n 35._o sacrifice_n 1._o chro._n 23_o 35._o but_o other_o be_v disperse_v through_o diverse_a country_n partly_o do_v service_n in_o the_o synagogue_n and_o partly_o do_v sit_v in_o judgement_n with_o the_o elder_n in_o the_o gate_n 44.15_o gate_n ezec._n 44.15_o what_o be_v scribe_n of_o they_o there_o be_v three_o sort_n one_o which_o stand_v before_o king_n as_o 2._o king_n 12.10_o another_o who_o do_v write_v private_a contract_n and_o instrument_n such_o as_o we_o call_v notary_n or_o scrivener_n such_o be_v cinney_n 45.2_o cinney_n 1_o chro._n 2.55_o jerem._n 32_o 1●_n psal_n 45.2_o and_o in_o a_o word_n they_o be_v call_v scribe_n be_v more_o skilful_a than_o other_o in_o god_n law_n and_o they_o especial_o be_v of_o the_o tribe_n of_o levi_n 7.6_o levi_n joh._n 1.18_o esd_v 7.6_o who_o both_o in_o the_o synagogue_n and_o in_o the_o temple_n do_v teach_v the_o law_n for_o the_o which_o cause_n they_o be_v call_v lawyer_n and_o teacher_n of_o the_o law_n 12.18_o law_n mat._n 17.29.23.2_o mark_n 12.18_o so_o also_o they_o be_v call_v scribe_n because_o they_o do_v write_v and_o interpret_v the_o law_n as_o it_o be_v keeper_n and_o teacher_n of_o the_o holy_a table_n 8.8_o table_n jere._n 8.8_o what_o be_v prophet_n they_o be_v person_n immediate_o and_o extraordinary_o call_v by_o god_n who_o shall_v speak_v 1.1_o speak_v mat._n 13.52_o hebr._n 1.1_o by_o a_o extraordinary_a instinct_n of_o god_n alone_a spirit_n those_o thing_n which_o they_o do_v understand_v that_o be_v such_o as_o be_v extraordinary_o raise_v up_o for_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n to_o ask_v god_n upon_o present_a occasion_n concern_v her_o present_a calamity_n 27._o calamity_n 1._o sam._n 2_o 27._o as_o also_o in_o want_n of_o priest_n to_o deliver_v to_o other_o doctrine_n immediate_o receive_v from_o god_n to_o interpret_v the_o law_n to_o restore_v god_n worship_n and_o as_o often_o as_o the_o people_n fall_v away_o to_o reproove_v with_o great_a zeal_n and_o sharpness_n of_o speech_n the_o priest_n and_o king_n sin_v or_o negligent_a in_o their_o office_n 22.21_o office_n 2._o sam._n 12.7_o exod._n 22.21_o and_o so_o shall_v instruct_v they_o and_o stir_v they_o up_o to_o good_a work_n foretell_v certain_o thing_n to_o come_v as_o the_o mutation_n of_o empire_n punishment_n of_o sin_n special_a event_n and_o deliverance_n to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o good_a of_o the_o people_n and_o which_o be_v most_o principal_a to_o comfort_v the_o people_n with_o the_o hope_n of_o the_o messiah_n to_o come_v and_o therefore_o be_v move_v by_o divine_a inspiration_n they_o prophesy_v in_o several_a province_n assign_v they_o of_o his_o conception_n nativity_n passion_n death_n resurrection_n come_v to_o judgement_n and_o everlasting_a kingdom_n a._n these_o be_v call_v prophet_n of_o the_o greek_a word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o foretell_v to_o which_o answer_v that_o greek_a word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 24.27_o isay_n 1.6_o oer_o 14._o etc._n etc._n ez●ch_o 1.2.3_o 1_o pet._n 1.1_o 2._o pet._n 1.21_o esai_n 7.14_o 9_o 5.6_o mich._n 5.2_o esai_n 53._o luke_n 24.27_o mantenesthai_n yet_o so_o as_o this_o belong_v to_o profane_a prophet_n that_o to_o holy_a prophet_n yet_o this_o be_v also_o true_a that_o they_o also_o be_v call_v prophet_n but_o distinguish_v from_o these_o who_o be_v ordinary_a teacher_n and_o bring_v up_o in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o law_n by_o man_n 26.11.29.1_o man_n jer._n 26.11.29.1_o whence_o it_o be_v that_o paul_n sometime_o use_v the_o word_n prophecy_n for_o the_o interpretation_n of_o prophecy_n even_o without_o the_o spirit_n of_o fore_n tell_v thing_n to_o come_v 26.11.29.1_o come_v jer._n 26.11.29.1_o but_o by_o way_n of_o excellency_n christ_n the_o head_n of_o all_o prophet_n be_v call_v that_o prophet_n deut._n 18.15_o john_n 1.45_o acts._n 3.12_o 14.29_o 3.12_o 1._o cor._n 14.29_o how_o be_v true_a prophet_n make_v to_o prophesy_v either_o by_o vision_n and_o figure_n or_o image_n offer_v to_o their_o mind_n or_o eye_n 12.6_o eye_n num._n 12.6_o whereupon_o they_o be_v call_v seer_n 9.9_o seer_n 1._o sam._n 9.9_o thus_o jeremie_n see_v a_o almond_n tree_n and_o a_o seethe_a pot_n 1.11.13_o pot_n jer._n 1.11.13_o ezechiell_n four_o beast_n and_o so_o many_o wheel_n 1._o wheel_n eze_n 1._o daniel_n the_o handwriting_n on_o the_o wall_n 25._o wall_n dan._n 5.24_o 25._o zacharie_n a_o man_n ride_v upon_o a_o red_a horse_n betwixt_o the_o myrtle_n tree_n and_o four_o horn_n 1.8.20_o horn_n zach._n 1.8.20_o or_o by_o dream_n send_v from_o god_n or_o by_o inward_a inspiration_n of_o god_n spirit_n 1.21_o spirit_n 2._o pet._n 1.21_o or_o by_o express_a word_n by_o the_o apparition_n of_o a_o angel_n represent_v god_n 18.13_o god_n gen._n 18.13_o or_o by_o god_n himself_o speak_v face_n to_o face_n with_o they_o that_o be_v familiar_o as_o he_o do_v with_o moses_n 16.20.20_o moses_n num._n 12._o &_o 16.20.20_o how_o do_v prophet_n differ_v from_o priest_n 1_o priest_n be_v ever_o of_o the_o tribe_n of_o levi_n but_o prophet_n also_o of_o other_o trybe_n 7.14_o trybe_n esa_n 1.1_o 20.2_o dan._n 1.3_o amos_n 7.14_o 2._o the_o priest_n duty_n be_v not_o only_o to_o pray_v and_o teach_v but_o also_o to_o perform_v holy_a rite_n which_o prophet_n do_v not_o for_o in_o that_o elias_n sacrifice_v and_o that_o out_o of_o that_o place_n choose_v by_o god_n 38._o god_n 1._o king_n 18_o 38._o it_o be_v extraordinary_a because_o he_o be_v move_v by_o a_o private_a inspiration_n from_o god_n contrary_a to_o the_o general_a law_n as_o augustine_n say_v in_o his_o 56_o question_n upon_o leviticus_fw-la the_o lawgiver_n when_o he_o command_v any_o thing_n contrary_a to_o his_o law_n his_o commandment_n be_v to_o be_v repute_v as_o a_o law_n 3._o priest_n be_v choose_v only_o by_o succession_n and_o have_v a_o ordinary_a ministry_n but_o prophet_n be_v send_v by_o god_n at_o his_o pleasure_n after_o a_o extraordinary_a sort_n and_o inspire_v by_o his_o spirit_n without_o respect_n have_v even_o of_o sex_n 2.15_o sex_n jud._n 4.4_o 2._o king_n 2.15_o fourthly_a priest_n may_v
err_v as_o aaron_n do_v but_o true_a prophet_n to_o wit_n inspire_v by_o god_n as_o they_o be_v prophet_n do_v not_o err_v how_o many_o kind_n or_o sort_n of_o ministry_n be_v there_o of_o the_o new_a testament_n paul_n rom._n 12.6_o 7_o make_v two_o to_o wit_n prophecy_n and_o ministry_n under_o the_o name_n of_o pprophecy_n comprehend_v their_o office_n who_o labour_n in_o teach_v and_o exhort_v whether_o it_o be_v in_o speech_n as_o pastor_n or_o instruction_n as_o doctor_n 17_o doctor_n 1_o timo._n 5_o 17_o but_o under_o the_o name_n of_o ministry_n he_o understand_v their_o office_n who_o have_v another_o service_n as_o distribution_n of_o alm_n censure_n of_o manner_n provision_n for_o the_o poor_a or_o other_o ecclesiastical_a office_n from_o which_o the_o apostle_n exempt_v themselves_o 4._o themselves_o act._n 6.2.3_o 4._o the_o like_a distribution_n he_o have_v philip._n 1.1_o tim._n 3.2.8_o call_v they_o bishop_n who_o rom._n 12_o 6.7_o he_o call_v prophet_n namely_o to_o who_o be_v commit_v the_o ministry_n of_o teach_v understand_v the_o rest_n by_o the_o name_n of_o deacons_n so_o peter_n 1_o pet_n 4.11_o say_v if_o any_o man_n speak_v let_v he_o speak_v as_o the_o word_n of_o god_n if_o any_o man_n minister_v etc._n etc._n so_o then_o of_o they_o that_o bear_v ecclesiastical_a office_n some_o be_v teacher_n other_o be_v minister_n how_o many_o order_n of_o teacher_n be_v there_o the_o same_o paul_n ephes_n 4.11_o number_v five_o apostle_n prophet_n evangelist_n pastor_n and_o doctor_n of_o who_o apostle_n prophet_n and_o evangelist_n have_v a_o temporary_a and_o extraordinary_a call_n and_o therefore_o be_v now_o cease_v but_o pastor_n and_o doctor_n which_o be_v ordinary_a calling_n be_v to_o continue_v for_o ever_o to_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n for_o prophecy_n and_o knowledge_n that_o be_v the_o gift_n of_o teach_v &_o prophesy_v be_v institute_v of_o god_n for_o the_o collect_v of_o a_o church_n and_o nourish_v it_o in_o this_o life_n be_v therefore_o say_v to_o be_v abolish_v and_o of_o no_o use_n 1._o cor._n 13.8_o because_o god_n by_o himself_o through_o a_o inward_a power_n shall_v effect_v that_o in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v which_o he_o have_v begin_v in_o we_o in_o some_o sort_n by_o his_o minister_n in_o this_o life_n what_o be_v apostle_n peculiar_o and_o by_o way_n of_o excellency_n those_o that_o be_v call_v the_o first_o apostle_n as_o also_o those_o eleven_o elect_v &_o call_v out_o of_o the_o world_n not_o by_o man_n or_o from_o man_n but_o immediate_o by_o christ_n live_v yet_o upon_o earth_n before_o his_o manyfestation_n that_o as_o hearald_n they_o may_v stir_v up_o only_o their_o own_o nation_n and_o be_v send_v prepare_v they_o to_o harken_v to_o christ_n 10.6.7_o christ_n math._n 10.6.7_o and_o in_o the_o end_n after_o his_o resurrection_n be_v confirm_v by_o he_o to_o the_o same_o apostleship_n they_o may_v publish_v the_o doctrine_n commit_v to_o they_o through_o the_o whole_a world_n 20.21_o world_n mat_n 28_o 19.20_o mark_n 16.15_o john_n 20.21_o but_o because_o he_o command_v they_o to_o stay_v at_o jerusalem_n till_o they_o be_v endue_v with_o virtue_n from_o above_o 1.24_o above_o act._n 1.24_o after_o his_o ascension_n in_o the_o same_o place_n and_o at_o the_o same_o time_n to_o wit_n on_o the_o day_n of_o pentecost_n they_o be_v by_o the_o visible_a gift_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o it_o be_v by_o a_o solemn_a inauguration_n mathias_n be_v join_v with_o they_o before_o the_o whole_a people_n of_o israel_n confirm_v in_o their_o appostleship_n and_o declare_v to_o be_v the_o apostle_n of_o christ_n in_o which_o respect_n they_o be_v say_v then_o to_o be_v give_v of_o christ_n from_o heaven_n 4.11_o heaven_n act._n 2.1_o etc._n etc._n ephes_n 4.11_o by_o this_o it_o appear_v that_o this_o solemn_a send_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v appertain_v to_o none_o other_o but_o to_o those_o twelve_o destine_v by_o so_o peculiar_a abundance_n of_o god_n spirit_n to_o plant_v church_n through_o the_o whole_a world_n even_o as_o to_o they_o proper_o and_o peculiar_o the_o promise_n be_v make_v 20._o make_v luk._n 24.49_o mat._n 28_o 19_o 20._o and_o as_o the_o apostleship_n be_v proper_a to_o they_o 2.22_o they_o act._n 2.22_o to_o these_o add_v we_o those_o two_o call_v by_o christ_n after_o his_o ascension_n mathias_n by_o lot_n 1.16_o lot_n act._n 1.16_o and_o paul_n from_o heaven_n 1._o heaven_n act._n 9.3_o gal._n 2_o 1._o all_o which_o as_o builder_n and_o founder_n of_o the_o future_a edifice_n of_o the_o church_n &_o as_o it_o be_v patriarch_n be_v send_v not_o to_o teach_v only_o in_o certain_a place_n but_o to_o plant_v church_n through_o the_o whole_a world_n when_o also_o they_o be_v call_v apostle_n as_o it_o be_v the_o lord_n legate_n who_o also_o be_v inspire_v by_o god_n do_v deliver_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n both_o by_o word_n and_o in_o writing_n so_o as_o their_o doctrine_n be_v the_o canon_n and_o rule_n of_o all_o christian_n religion_n which_o must_v be_v show_v to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n and_o be_v endue_v by_o christ_n with_o virtue_n of_o do_v miracle_n they_o confirm_v their_o doctrine_n by_o miracle_n and_o seal_v it_o by_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n 28.19_o sacrament_n math._n 28.19_o &_o which_o be_v principal_a in_o they_o they_o alone_o in_o the_o infancy_n of_o the_o church_n by_o a_o visible_a sign_n of_o imposition_n of_o hand_n give_v the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o who_o all_o and_o each_o of_o they_o be_v all_o of_o equal_a power_n and_o dignity_n ecclesiastical_a among_o themselves_o in_o a_o primary_n &_o principal_a but_o yet_o a_o spiritual_a power_n but_o not_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o gift_n of_o the_o spirit_n for_o although_o the_o same_o talon_n be_v give_v to_o all_o yet_o it_o be_v double_v upon_o some_o and_o tripled_a upon_o other_o so_o as_o one_o excel_v a_o other_o in_o labour_n and_o eminency_n of_o grace_n 20_o grace_n 1_o cor._n 15_o 20_o this_o office_n after_o they_o have_v well_o discharge_v together_o with_o they_o that_o apostolical_a function_n cease_v not_o in_o regard_n of_o their_o doctrine_n to_o which_o the_o church_n be_v perpetual_o oblige_v nor_o in_o regard_n of_o their_o ministry_n to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n and_o administer_v the_o sacrament_n but_o in_o regard_n of_o apostolical_a excellency_n plenary_a authority_n for_o itself_o to_o be_v believe_v so_o as_o he_o that_o shall_v resist_v their_o doctrine_n do_v not_o resist_v man_n but_o god_n and_o that_o it_o be_v not_o circumscribe_v within_o any_o confine_n of_o the_o world_n but_o to_o be_v diwlge_v through_o the_o whole_a earth_n as_o also_o to_o find_v and_o plant_v church_n &_o to_o confer_v the_o gift_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n by_o imposition_n of_o hand_n to_o constitute_v perpetual_a function_n in_o the_o church_n and_o in_o a_o word_n to_o prescribe_v rule_n for_o church_n government_n for_o thus_o their_o office_n be_v temporary_a for_o that_o of_o christ_n at_o this_o departure_n john_n 20.21_o as_o my_o father_n send_v i_o so_o i_o send_v you_o be_v to_o be_v restrain_v to_o their_o apostleship_n only_o &_o they_o be_v as_o we_o may_v say_v successer_n of_o the_o prophet_n but_o the_o prophet_n be_v sower_n the_o apostle_n reaper_n 4.35_o reaper_n john_n 4.35_o 10_o 4.35_o ●ct_n 11.28_o 2d_o 10_o they_o preach_v christ_n to_o come_v these_o christ_n already_o come_v who_o be_v call_v prophet_n special_o they_o who_o about_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o gospel_n preach_v and_o excel_v in_o a_o singular_a gift_n of_o revelation_n and_o wisdom_n by_o the_o instinct_n of_o god_n spirit_n and_o be_v sometime_o able_a to_o foretell_v matter_n of_o great_a moment_n concern_v the_o church_n or_o such_o as_o shall_v be_v tide_v some_o of_o the_o faith_n full_a who_o god_n adjoin_v to_o the_o apostle_n though_o they_o also_o be_v endue_v with_o the_o spirit_n of_o prophecy_n c_o that_o by_o this_o supernatural_a grace_n of_o the_o spirit_n he_o may_v also_o confirm_v the_o apostle_n preach_v by_o which_o grace_n it_o please_v he_o to_o adorn_v &_o confirm_v that_o then_o breed_v church_n such_o a_o prophet_n be_v agabus_n and_o the_o four_o daughter_n of_o philip_n thevangelist_n 29.31_o thevangelist_n 1._o cor._n 14_o 29.31_o hence_o to_o prophesy_v be_v to_o interpret_v prophecy_n 1._o cor._n 11.4.5_o and_o the_o spirit_n of_o prophet_n 1_o cor._n 14.32_o be_v for_o the_o doctrine_n which_o prophet_n endue_v with_o god_n spirit_n do_v bring_v notwithstanding_o in_o general_n they_o be_v call_v prophet_n who_o have_v a_o singular_a gift_n in_o interpret_n scripture_n such_o be_v now_o adays_o the_o learned_a interpreter_n of_o scripture_n who_o be_v evangelist_n 1_o companion_n fellow_n laborer_n and_o fellow_n minister_n of_o the_o apostle_n not_o choose_v by_o christ_n
himself_o that_o be_v without_o man_n ministry_n but_o by_o the_o apostle_n delect_v as_o associate_n to_o perform_v their_o office_n in_o water_v their_o planting_n build_v upon_o their_o foundation_n perfect_v their_o work_n and_o be_v in_o preach_v the_o gospel_n sometime_o in_o one_o sometime_o in_o another_o place_n as_o it_o be_v subsidiarie_n and_o certain_a secundarie_n apostle_n not_o in_o one_o only_a but_o in_o many_o church_n and_o who_o shall_v have_v power_n and_o authority_n to_o set_v pastor_n and_o order_n in_o particular_a church_n to_o which_o they_o be_v send_v and_o that_o till_o such_o time_n as_o they_o be_v recall_v by_o the_o apostle_n 1.4_o apostle_n tit._n 1.4_o such_o be_v timothy_n 16.3_o timothy_n act._n 16.3_o luke_n mark_n tichicus_n 12_o tichicus_n 2._o tim._n 4.11_o 12_o &_o titus_n 23._o titus_n 2._o cor._n 8_o 23._o philip_n 21.8_o philip_n act._n 21.8_o and_o other_o whether_o they_o be_v call_v out_o of_o those_o 70_o disciple_n who_o christ_n appoint_v beside_o the_o 12._o 12_o 12._o luk._n 20_o 12_o or_o from_o among_o other_o 2_o in_o a_o more_o strict_a signification_n those_o four_o penman_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o labour_n the_o lord_n use_v to_o publish_v the_o evangelicall_a history_n of_o christ_n and_o to_o describe_v the_o beginning_n of_o the_o christian_n church_n be_v call_v evangelist_n of_o these_o two_o mark_v &_o luke_n be_v companion_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o evangelist_n the_o other_o two_o matthew_n and_o john_n be_v apostle_n and_o evangelist_n may_v not_o other_o pastor_n and_o doctor_n of_o the_o church_n be_v call_v apostle_n prophet_n and_o evangelist_n no_o but_o abusive_o for_o concern_v the_o appellation_n of_o a_o apostle_n andronicus_n and_o innias_fw-it be_v say_v to_o be_v famous_a among_o the_o apostle_n that_o be_v of_o note_n with_o those_o ancient_a apostle_n but_o yet_o they_o be_v not_o call_v apostle_n 17_o apostle_n ronvere_n 16_o 17_o beside_o the_o name_n of_o a_o apostle_n be_v give_v to_o titus_n his_o two_o companion_n 8.23_o companion_n 2_o cor._n 8.23_o yet_o not_o simple_o but_o with_o addition_n as_o they_o be_v send_v by_o certain_a church_n to_o collect_v alm_n and_o epaphroditus_n be_v not_o simple_o call_v a_o apostle_n of_o christ_n but_o of_o the_o philippian_n send_v by_o they_o to_o relieve_v paul_n 25_o paul_n phil._n ●_o 25_o thus_o that_o great_a name_n be_v so_o peculiar_a simple_o to_o those_o choose_a apostle_n that_o paul_n say_v not_o without_o advice_n all_o be_v not_o apostle_n 2._o cor._n 12.29_o as_o for_o evangelist_n to_o preach_v be_v proper_a indeed_o to_o all_o 12._o all_o 1_o cor._n 12._o but_o the_o appellation_n of_o the_o evangelist_n belong_v to_o none_o but_o they_o who_o the_o apostle_n join_v unto_o they_o as_o occasion_n serve_v in_o water_v those_o church_n which_o they_o have_v plant_v and_o who_o they_o appoint_v not_o over_o one_o church_n but_o over_o province_n and_o that_o only_a for_o a_o time_n but_o the_o name_n of_o a_o prophet_n be_v sometime_o general_o give_v to_o all_o the_o interpreter_n of_o god_n word_n as_o rom._n 12.6_o 1._o corinth_n 14.29_o sometime_o it_o do_v distinguish_v they_o peculiar_o from_o doctor_n as_o when_o difference_n be_v make_v betwixt_o doctrine_n and_o revelation_n 1._o corinth_n 14.16_o and_o also_o when_o doctor_n be_v distinguish_v from_o pastor_n by_o doctrine_n and_o exhortation_n as_o rom._n 12.7.8_o who_o be_v be_v call_v pastor_n sure_o they_o who_o may_v be_v call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 12.8_o 〈◊〉_d rom._n 12.8_o exhorter_n that_o be_v who_o be_v lawful_o call_v do_v preach_v god_n word_n and_o in_o preach_v do_v not_o simple_o explain_v it_o but_o by_o teach_v admonish_a reprove_v correct_v inform_a exhort_v and_o comfort_v do_v public_o 2_o public_o 1._o pet_n 5_o 2_o and_o private_o apply_v it_o to_o the_o use_n of_o the_o church_n 5.9_o church_n act._n 14_o 13_o 1._o cor_n 11_o 18_o 1._o tim._n 3.16_o tit_n 1_o 5.9_o and_o beside_o do_v labour_n in_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n conceive_v public_a prayer_n and_o be_v watchful_a to_o take_v away_o offence_n and_o to_o govern_v the_o church_n 12.7_o church_n rom._n 12.7_o these_o by_o a_o general_a name_n be_v call_v elder_n and_o deacon_n 7_o deacon_n 1_o cor_n 13_o 5_o col_n 1_o 7_o such_o as_o be_v over_o us._n 5_o us._n 1_o thes_n 5_o and_o hebr._n 13._o guide_n to_o conclude_v the_o chief_a of_o they_o be_v call_v episcopi_fw-la bishop_n of_o a_o greek_a word_n which_o signify_v to_o look_v into_o that_o nothing_o be_v want_v to_o the_o people_n of_o their_o diocese_n because_o it_o be_v the_o duty_n of_o pastor_n as_o it_o be_v spy_n to_o look_v narrow_o into_o the_o doctrine_n and_o manner_n of_o the_o flock_n commit_v unto_o they_o what_o be_v doctor_n who_o only_o apply_v themselves_o to_o the_o faithful_a and_o plain_a interpretation_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o to_o rule_v ecclesiastical_a school_n to_o the_o end_n that_o sincere_a doctrine_n may_v be_v keep_v in_o the_o church_n or_o they_o who_o only_o explain_v the_o word_n of_o god_n to_o deliver_v true_a doctrine_n and_o confute_v false_a such_o be_v catechizer_n as_o origen_n in_o the_o church_n of_o alexandria_n and_o clemens_n and_o the_o like_a be_v not_o doctor_n and_o pastor_n all_o one_o as_o augustine_n think_v no_o because_o paul_n give_v they_o diverse_a name_n ephes_n 4.11_o and_o rom._n 12.7_o he_o distinguish_v teacher_n from_o exhorter_n and_o speech_n from_o knowledge_n itself_o of_o holy_a thing_n or_o he_o thus_o distinguish_v pastor_n from_o doctor_n what_o degree_n be_v substitute_v unto_o these_o rather_o for_o exercise_v then_o for_o office_n sake_n 1._o porter_n who_o keep_v the_o gate_n of_o the_o church_n that_o they_o may_v let_v in_o penitentiaries_n and_o keep_v out_o wicked_a man_n from_o the_o church_n and_o such_o as_o be_v excommunicate_v from_o the_o sacrament_n 2_o acoluthoi_n follower_n attendant_n and_o as_o it_o be_v page_n of_o bishop_n be_v witness_n and_o imitator_n of_o all_o their_o speech_n and_o withal_o most_o ready_a servant_n unto_o they_o 3_o lectores_fw-la or_o reader_n minister_n of_o pastor_n and_o doctor_n read_v so_o the_o scripture_n out_o of_o some_o high_a place_n that_o within_o one_o year_n all_o the_o book_n of_o the_o bible_n for_o the_o more_o familiar_a knowledge_n of_o the_o scripture_n may_v be_v read_v over_o 4_o we_o read_v also_o in_o very_o ancient_a writer_n of_o exorcist_n who_o use_v the_o name_n of_o god_n and_o have_v the_o gift_n of_o miracle_n by_o call_v upon_o christ_n and_o imposition_n of_o hand_n cast_v out_o devil_n act._n 19.23_o but_o this_o office_n be_v cease_v with_o the_o gift_n of_o miracle_n 〈◊〉_d in_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 5_o in_o the_o scripture_n they_o be_v call_v the_o clergy_n who_o be_v the_o congregation_n of_o the_o faithful_a and_o flock_n of_o sheep_n or_o the_o member_n of_o the_o church_n 14.39_o church_n 1_o cor_n 14.39_o because_o they_o be_v the_o portion_n and_o inheritance_n of_o the_o lord_n 1._o pet._n 5.3_o but_o afterward_o the_o ancient_a father_n do_v translate_v the_o name_n of_o clergy_n to_o the_o college_n of_o ecclesiastical_a minister_n so_o as_o all_o student_n be_v call_v clergy_n man_n who_o be_v maintain_v of_o their_o parent_n or_o the_o church_n cost_v to_o become_v minister_n how_o do_v pastor_n and_o doctor_n differ_v from_o apostle_n prophet_n and_o evangelist_n nothing_o at_o all_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o essential_a part_n of_o the_o ministry_n which_o be_v the_o sincere_a preach_n of_o the_o word_n the_o administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o correction_n of_o manner_n but_o in_o respect_n of_o thing_n peculiar_a to_o the_o call_n of_o apostle_n they_o differ_v much_o for_o 1._o cor._n 12._o the_o apostle_n paul_n have_v divide_v the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n into_o the_o word_n of_o wisdom_n and_o the_o word_n of_o knowledge_n to_o apostle_n prophet_n and_o evangelist_n he_o do_v attribute_v wisdom_n to_o wit_n that_o more_o excellent_a and_o without_o all_o controversy_n great_a knowledge_n of_o the_o mystery_n of_o god_n 21.10_o act._n 11.27.6_o 21.10_o that_o have_v with_o it_o the_o great_a authority_n and_o be_v give_v by_o the_o peculiar_a inspiration_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n namely_o by_o revelation_n and_o as_o a_o for_o knowledge_n which_o be_v the_o understanding_n of_o the_o gospel_n that_o be_v get_v by_o hear_v and_o read_v of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n that_o be_v to_o say_v by_o study_v and_o learn_v that_o he_o refer_v to_o ordinary_a pastor_n and_o doctor_n but_o the_o personal_a gift_n of_o the_o apostle_n that_o be_v 10.6_o be_v 1._o cor._n 12.9_o 10._o act_n 5.5.10_o &_o 8.20_o &_o 13.10.11_o 2._o cor._n 10.6_o such_o as_o be_v give_v proper_o to_o the_o apostle_n alone_o as_o 1_o
prophecy_n by_o singular_a revelation_n 2_o discern_v of_o spirit_n the_o gift_n of_o tongue_n &_o of_o do_v of_o special_a miracle_n the_o gift_n of_o bestow_v the_o free_a gift_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n by_o lay_v on_o their_o hand_n &_o of_o most_o sever_v revenge_v of_o contumacy_n by_o extraordinary_a punishment_n as_o it_o appear_v in_o ananias_n and_o saphira_n 6_o act._n 5.5.10_o &_o 8.20_o &_o 13.10_o 11_o 2._o cor_n 10_o 6_o and_o elimas_n the_o sorcerer_n 3_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o e●re_v 4_o the_o verse_n authority_n of_o their_o apostolical_a office_n superior_a to_o all_o other_o not_o only_o in_o order_n but_o in_o degree_n also_o and_o in_o power_n and_o their_o charge_n that_o be_v extend_v over_o the_o whole_a earth_n and_o not_o tie_v to_o one_o flock_n alone_o or_o to_o one_o church_n as_o it_o appear_v math._n 28.19_o 16.15_o 28.19_o mar._n 16.15_o these_o personal_a gift_n i_o say_v and_o this_o apostolical_a authority_n be_v not_o pass_v over_o neither_o unto_o pastor_n nor_o yet_o unto_o doctor_n of_o the_o church_n but_o cease_v with_o these_o man_n of_o the_o first_o time_n what_o be_v the_o order_n of_o they_o that_o minister_n there_o be_v 2._o order_n of_o they_o the_o one_o of_o elder_n the_o other_o of_o deacon_n 11.21_o act._n 1.8_o 2._o cor_fw-la 11.21_o the_o elder_n be_v of_o two_o sort_n some_o be_v pastor_n and_o doctor_n which_o ought_v to_o spend_v their_o time_n in_o the_o word_n and_o doctrine_n other_o who_o office_n be_v to_o govern_v 1._o tim._n 5.17_o the_o elder_n which_o rule_v well_o be_v worthy_a of_o double_a honour_n but_o most_o of_o all_o they_o which_o labour_n in_o the_o word_n and_o in_o doctrine_n elder_n proper_o so_o call_v rather_o of_o manner_n then_o of_o age_n as_o far_o forth_o as_o they_o be_v distinguish_v from_o pastor_n and_o do_v not_o preach_v the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v man_n of_o approve_a godliness_n appoint_v to_o every_o church_n in_o the_o peculiar_a censure_n of_o manner_n and_o government_n of_o the_o church_n to_o observe_v diligent_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o flock_n over_o which_o they_o be_v appoint_v &_o constant_o to_o admonish_v every_o one_o out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n if_o they_o shall_v espy_v any_o fault_n or_o offence_n either_o in_o doctrine_n or_o in_o life_n of_o who_o act._n 14_o 23._o who_o paul_n 1._o cor._n 12_o 28._o term_n by_o their_o peculiar_a name_n government_n in_o the_o abstract_n for_o governor_n in_o the_o concrete_a distinguish_v from_o pastor_n and_o doctor_n proper_o so_o call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o also_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d ruler_n rom._n 12.8_o sometime_o they_o be_v call_v by_o the_o general_a name_n of_o watchman_n and_o bishopp_n that_o be_v overseer_n who_o we_o may_v call_v the_o censor_n of_o manner_n 14._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 1._o tim._n 4_o 14._o unto_o who_o also_o be_v commit_v the_o cure_n of_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n which_o be_v the_o deacons_n the_o steward_n of_o the_o house_n of_o god_n lawful_o choose_v out_o of_o the_o common_a assembly_n of_o the_o church_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v proper_o call_v deacon_n which_o have_v the_o charge_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a treasure_n or_o the_o office_n of_o assistance_n that_o be_v who_o be_v set_v over_o the_o receipt_n and_o also_o the_o orderly_o lay_v our_o and_o distribute_v of_o the_o holy_a alm_n and_o collection_n and_o other_o good_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v to_o be_v administer_v as_o themselves_o the_o pastor_n and_o the_o elder_n shall_v think_v good_a and_o to_o the_o relief_n of_o the_o poor_a the_o orphan_n and_o widow_n and_o stranger_n but_o especial_o of_o such_o as_o be_v of_o the_o household_n of_o faith_n and_o to_o other_o holy_a use_n 18_o use_n act_n 6.1_o 2_o gal._n 6_o 16._o phil_n 1_o 1_o 1_o tim_n 3.8_o 12_o &_o 18_o unto_o who_o it_o be_v therefore_o thus_o command_v rom._n 12.8_o he_o that_o distribute_v let_v he_o do_v it_o in_o simplicity_n that_o be_v in_o sincerity_n of_o heart_n &_o without_o respect_n of_o person_n and_o in_o veery_a deed_n they_o take_v the_o name_n of_o deacon_n from_o their_o serve_v at_o table_n because_o upon_o they_o be_v lay_v the_o laboursome_a charge_n of_o gather_v and_o dispose_v the_o collection_n and_o offering_n whereof_o the_o love_n feast_n be_v make_v which_o consist_v partly_o in_o receive_v of_o common_a meat_n 6.12_o meat_n act_n 2_o 46_o &_o 20_o 7_o 1_o cor_fw-la 11.20_o jud._n 6.12_o but_o especial_o in_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n and_o partly_o in_o holy_a speech_n and_o the_o conference_n at_o and_o after_o meat_n tertul._n in_o apolog._n cap._n 39_o and_o when_o these_o love_n feast_n be_v grow_v out_o of_o use_n yet_o there_o remain_v the_o same_o charge_n of_o deacon_n still_o in_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n but_o chief_o in_o the_o give_v about_o of_o the_o cup_n but_o they_o be_v neither_o pastor_n nor_o doctor_n because_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o profess_v that_o they_o be_v not_o able_a to_o attend_v both_o serve_v at_o tale_n and_o preach_v act._n 6_o 2._o and_o paul_n will_v have_v pastor_n to_o be_v apt_a to_o teach_v 15_o teach_v 1_o tim._n 3.12.9_o luk._n 4.7_o act._n 13_o 15_o but_o in_o deacon_n he_o only_o require_v that_o they_o hold_v the_o mystery_n of_o the_o faith_n and_o stephen_n act._n 6_o 8_o because_o he_o be_v a_o deacon_n only_o he_o be_v not_o say_v to_o have_v teach_v in_o the_o church_n but_o in_o the_o synagogue_n of_o the_o jew_n where_o every_o one_o may_v speak_v as_o it_o appear_v luke_n 2.46_o 21.8_o 2.46_o act._n 8_o 5_o &_o 21.8_o and_o philip_n be_v no_o long_o a_o deacon_n of_o the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n but_o of_o a_o deacon_n make_v a_o evangelist_n preach_v the_o gospel_n yet_o if_o such_o be_v find_v to_o be_v fit_a for_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n we_o must_v not_o deny_v but_o that_o they_o be_v to_o be_v prefer_v before_o other_o of_o who_o there_o be_v not_o so_o good_a proof_n furthermore_o since_o the_o censure_v and_o judgement_n of_o manner_n be_v not_o a_o daily_a function_n it_o can_v be_v deny_v but_o that_o these_o two_o office_n of_o eldership_n and_o deaconship_n may_v easy_o be_v execute_v further_o the_o church_n have_v always_o have_v a_o public_a stock_n collect_v just_o and_o certain_o among_o the_o people_n for_o the_o retain_v of_o the_o holy_a exercise_n of_o religion_n and_o faith_n hence_o it_o come_v that_o there_o be_v a_o treasury_n in_o the_o temple_n 1_o temple_n luk_n 20_o 1_o and_o god_n in_o time_n past_o appoint_v a_o tax_n to_o be_v raise_v upon_o the_o people_n for_o the_o repair_n of_o the_o tabernacle_n and_o the_o temple_n 13_o temple_n exo._n 30_o 13_o and_o the_o tithe_n he_o command_v to_o be_v pay_v to_o the_o priest_n deut._n 14.28_o yea_o and_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o have_v a_o care_n to_o constitute_v a_o common_a treasury_n of_o the_o church_n for_o the_o relief_n of_o the_o poor_a and_o for_o other_o necessity_n of_o the_o church_n heerupon_o paul_n appoint_v that_o collection_n shall_v be_v make_v upon_o the_o lord_n day_n 9.19_o day_n 1._o cor._n 16_o mat_n 10.10_o 1_o cor._n 9.19_o and_o afterward_o church_n wax_v rich_a by_o the_o liberality_n of_o diverse_a godly_a people_n and_o last_o the_o pay_n of_o tithe_n be_v again_o restore_v and_o these_o riches_n of_o the_o church_n be_v honest_a and_o just_a consider_v that_o they_o be_v give_v of_o such_o as_o have_v right_a to_o give_v they_o and_o who_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n stir_v up_o to_o bestow_v they_o further_o ecclesiastical_a good_n be_v divide_v into_o four_o part_n one_o part_n be_v distribute_v to_o the_o clergy_n that_o be_v to_o those_o which_o give_v themselves_o to_o the_o service_n of_o the_o church_n aswell_o in_o learning_n as_o in_o teach_v 2_o another_o part_n be_v give_v to_o the_o relief_n of_o the_o poor_a who_o be_v member_n of_o the_o same_o body_n with_o we_o under_o christ_n our_o head_n 3_o a_o three_o part_n to_o the_o keep_n of_o the_o building_n and_o vessel_n of_o the_o church_n a_o four_o part_n go_v to_o the_o bishop_n or_o to_o the_o ruler_n that_o therewith_o they_o may_v entertain_v poor_a stranger_n and_o also_o comfort_v their_o brethren_n that_o be_v in_o captivity_n 10_o captivity_n act._n 6.1_o &_o 1_o tim._n 5_o 9_o 10_o unto_o these_o deacon_n there_o be_v adion_v deaconess_n or_o widow_n of_o three_o score_n year_n old_a appoint_v especial_o to_o look_v to_o the_o sick_a to_o receive_v traveller_n that_o be_v brethren_n and_o for_o the_o necessity_n of_o other_o unto_o who_o it_o be_v command_v rom._n 12.8_o thus_o
and_o give_v not_o that_o honour_n unto_o the_o holy_a and_o sacred_a ministry_n that_o be_v meet_v 7_o the_o simony_n of_o the_o papist_n and_o their_o buy_n and_o sell_v of_o holy_a order_n all_o neglect_n of_o law_n divine_a and_o ecclesiastical_a in_o the_o popish_a election_n as_o namely_o that_o they_o have_v no_o regard_n of_o learning_n or_o life_n but_o promote_v rude_a ass_n and_o those_o of_o most_o filthy_a &_o wicked_a life_n they_o use_v vain_a ceremony_n of_o anoint_v shave_v wax_v candle_n and_o such_o toy_n they_o attribute_v that_o to_o the_o ministry_n of_o man_n which_o be_v only_o the_o work_n of_o god_n alone_o they_o transform_v the_o ordination_n of_o minister_n into_o a_o sacrament_n they_o do_v no_o more_o think_v of_o feed_v the_o flock_n then_o a_o cobbler_n do_v of_o plough_v 8_o in_o conclusion_n all_o the_o popish_a hierarchy_n and_o the_o primacy_n of_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n contrary_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n first_o that_o from_o the_o authority_n of_o saint_n paul_n they_o make_v peter_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n second_o the_o roman_a bishop_n which_o will_v be_v think_v to_o be_v the_o successor_n of_o peter_n call_v themselves_o indeed_o the_o servant_n of_o servant_n yet_o be_v not_o salute_v by_o any_o other_o name_n than_o our_o most_o holy_a lord_n they_o translate_v empire_n and_o kingdom_n and_o final_o they_o usurp_v unto_o themselves_o all_o government_n pure_a and_o mix_v they_o domineer_v in_o manner_n of_o king_n they_o boast_v of_o the_o patrimony_n of_o peter_n usurp_v a_o double_a sword_n spiritual_a and_o temporal_a and_o yet_o have_v neither_o of_o both_o and_o challenge_v unto_o themselves_o power_n to_o draw_v all_o man_n to_o hell_n without_o cause_n and_o cause_n even_o king_n to_o kiss_v their_o foot_n 3_o they_o allege_v that_o the_o priest_n of_o moses_n law_n be_v a_o figure_n of_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n and_o their_o masspriest_n they_o term_v by_o a_o false_a name_n of_o presbyter_n or_o priest_n 9_o all_o those_o proud_a and_o arrogant_a title_n of_o the_o antichristian_a counterfeit_a clergy_n of_o patriarch_n prince_n and_o such_o like_a 10_o the_o error_n of_o they_o which_o make_v a_o equality_n between_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n in_o holy_a function_n they_o make_v no_o difference_n between_o those_o that_o be_v temporary_a and_o those_o that_o be_v perpetual_a they_o that_o acknowledge_v no_o priest_n but_o those_o that_o have_v charge_n to_o teach_v public_o 11_o those_o that_o usurp_v that_o authority_n in_o the_o church_n which_o be_v peculiar_a to_o the_o apostle_n for_o this_o be_v that_o which_o the_o apostle_n a_o complain_v to_o be_v then_o do_v by_o some_o who_o boast_v themselves_o as_o if_o they_o be_v apostle_n 12_o the_o conceit_n of_o morellius_n concern_v the_o bring_v again_o into_o the_o church_n of_o the_o democraticke_a policy_n 13_o the_o subversion_n of_o the_o christian_n ministry_n the_o confusion_n of_o ecclesiastical_a office_n the_o rob_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a possession_n the_o end_n whereof_o what_o it_o be_v like_a to_o be_v the_o history_n of_o b_o achan_n teach_v us._n 14_o the_o sin_n of_o those_o who_o make_v no_o difference_n between_o the_o distribution_n of_o the_o church_n stock_n and_o the_o dispose_n of_o our_o public_a good_n which_o be_v a_o thing_n mere_o civil_a but_o confound_v these_o two_o treasury_n the_o name_n of_o all_o which_o thing_n be_v the_o confute_v of_o they_o the_o three_o and_o forty_o common_a place_n of_o the_o power_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n as_o also_o of_o synod_n be_v there_o any_o power_n of_o the_o church_n yes_o there_o be_v 1._o because_o no_o family_n no_o honest_a society_n no_o commonwealth_n and_o therefore_o not_o the_o church_n which_o be_v the_o most_o excellent_a society_n of_o all_o can_v long_o stand_v or_o continue_v without_o policy_n and_o government_n 2_o because_o god_n have_v prescribe_v law_n to_o his_o church_n therefore_o he_o have_v give_v power_n also_o to_o judge_v according_a to_o those_o law_n 3_o because_o in_o ancient_a time_n the_o priest_n and_o levite_n bare_a rule_n over_o ecclesiastical_a matter_n 24.8_o matter_n levit._fw-la 14.3_o deut._n 24.8_o and_o the_o synedry_n or_o counsel_n for_o the_o administer_a of_o god_n behest_n be_v compact_v of_o the_o priest_n levite_n lawyer_n or_o scribe_n and_o the_o head_n of_o family_n or_o the_o elder_n of_o the_o people_n 22._o people_n 2._o cro._n 19.8_o 9.10.11_o mat._n 5_o 22._o 18.19_o mat._n 18.19_o 4_o because_o in_o the_o place_n of_o that_o synedry_n or_o counsel_n of_o the_o synagogue_n christ_n do_v ordain_v c_o in_o the_o christian_a church_n a_o ecclesiastical_a senate_n and_o the_o apostle_n have_v diligent_o retain_v the_o same_o 4.14_o same_o 1_o tim._n 4.14_o so_o as_o the_o church_n have_v always_o have_v the_o like_a 5_o because_o the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n be_v commit_v unto_o the_o church_n 6_o because_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o word_n will_v be_v altogether_o unprofitable_a unless_o the_o church_n have_v power_n to_o bridle_v the_o contemner_n of_o the_o same_o 7_o because_o as_o we_o must_v give_v to_o caesar_n that_o that_o be_v caesar_n so_o to_o the_o church_n that_o which_o be_v the_o church_n must_v be_v yield_v mat._n 22.21_o by_o what_o name_n be_v it_o call_v power_n authority_n ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n mat._n 16.19_o i_o will_v give_v thou_o the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n so_o call_v by_o a_o metaphor_n whereby_o be_v signify_v the_o power_n of_o a_o steward_n in_o admit_v in_o and_o keep_v from_o come_v into_o the_o house_n who_o his_o master_n please_v 20.22_o please_v esa_n 20.22_o because_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n which_o be_v the_o church_n be_v administer_v that_o be_v to_o say_v be_v open_v to_o the_o believer_n and_o shut_v to_o the_o unbelever_n by_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n yea_o even_a heaven_n itself_o be_v propound_v unto_o we_o as_o a_o mansion_n house_n unto_o the_o which_o there_o be_v only_o one_o entrance_n by_o christ_n jesus_n and_o to_o christ_n faith_n only_o lead_v we_o which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v create_v in_o we_o by_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n which_o ministry_n because_o it_o be_v commit_v unto_o the_o pastor_n therefore_o they_o be_v say_v to_o bear_v the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n what_o be_v the_o ecclesiastical_a power_n it_o be_v that_o power_n that_o be_v give_v to_o the_o church_n to_o be_v exercise_v by_o those_o that_o be_v set_v over_o the_o church_n to_o establish_v and_o preserve_v the_o purity_n of_o the_o doctrine_n and_o of_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n decency_n order_n holiness_n of_o manner_n &_o honesty_n aswell_o public_a as_o private_a in_o the_o church_n and_o the_o member_n thereof_o and_o that_o not_o of_o any_o liberty_n to_o command_v every_o thing_n or_o at_o pleasure_n but_o by_o the_o prescript_n rule_n and_o according_a to_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o write_a word_n of_o god_n for_o the_o salvation_n and_o edification_n of_o the_o church_n whence_o or_o from_o who_o be_v this_o power_n from_o god_n by_o jesus_n christ_n for_o if_o you_o look_v unto_o man_n by_o who_o this_o power_n be_v administer_v it_o be_v only_o a_o mere_a ministry_n but_o if_o you_o look_v unto_o christ_n it_o be_v a_o most_o high_a authority_n than_o which_o there_o be_v upon_o earth_n none_o great_a more_o profitable_a or_o more_o excellent_a but_o the_o efficacy_n of_o it_o be_v from_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o work_v in_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n john_n 20.22_o receive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n etc._n etc._n do_v this_o ecclesiastical_a authority_n differ_v from_o the_o civil_a authority_n yes_o indeed_o witness_n christ_n himself_o luke_n 12.14_o 10.4_o 12.14_o &_o 22.15_o 26._o 2_o co._n 10.4_o they_o do_v agree_v indeed_o in_o the_o cause_n efficient_a for_o the_o author_n of_o both_o be_v god_n but_o they_o differ_v first_o in_o the_o matter_n for_o the_o matter_n of_o civil_a authority_n be_v a_o society_n of_o man_n and_o the_o preservation_n thereof_o for_o the_o lead_n of_o this_o corporal_a life_n under_o one_o &_o the_o same_o magistrate_n but_o the_o matter_n of_o ecclesiastical_a authority_n be_v a_o company_n of_o christian_a man_n so_o far_o forth_o as_o they_o be_v call_v of_o god_n and_o consecrate_v to_o lead_v a_o spiritual_a life_n in_o the_o true_a obedience_n of_o god_n moreover_o civil_a authority_n have_v reference_n unto_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v to_o say_v thing_n earthly_a and_o transitory_a which_o belong_v to_o the_o use_n of_o this_o life_n 6.3_o life_n 1._o cor._n 6.3_o ecclesiastical_a authority_n be_v refer_v unto_o thing_n spiritual_a and_o those_o which_o appertain_v to_o the_o
worship_n of_o god_n 6_o god_n 2._o cor._n 10.1_o 6_o 2_o they_o differ_v in_o the_o proper_a end_n for_o the_o end_n of_o the_o magistrate_n be_v that_o he_o may_v keep_v the_o society_n of_o man_n in_o peace_n and_o quietness_n instruct_v they_o by_o good_a law_n preserve_v and_o keep_v safe_a the_o body_n and_o good_n of_o his_o citizen_n and_o maintain_v and_o defend_v their_o life_n namely_o so_o far_o forth_o as_o they_o be_v inhabitant_n of_o this_o world_n &_o do_v live_v upon_o this_o earth_n 2_o earth_n rom._n 13.2.5_o 1_o tim_n 2_o 2_o albeit_o even_o by_o he_o god_n will_v have_v that_o same_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d of_o religion_n to_o be_v preserve_v as_o 2._o chron._n 15.13_o king_n asa_n make_v a_o law_n on_o this_o manner_n if_o any_o man_n seek_v not_o the_o lord_n god_n of_o israel_n let_v he_o die_v but_o the_o direct_a end_n of_o the_o pastor_n be_v that_o they_o may_v build_v up_o govern_v instruct_v and_o teach_v the_o conscience_n of_o the_o citizen_n of_o the_o church_n by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n so_o far_o forth_o as_o they_o be_v freeman_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o be_v in_o time_n to_o be_v gather_v together_o in_o heaven_n 3.2.3_o heaven_n eph._n 1●_n 8_o phil._n 3.20_o coloss_n 3.2.3_o whence_o it_o be_v that_o the_o ecclesiastical_a authority_n be_v call_v ius_n poli_fw-fr or_o the_o law_n of_o heaven_n and_o the_o civil_a authority_n be_v call_v ius_n soli_n or_o the_o law_n of_o the_o land_n or_o soil_n 3_o they_o differ_v in_o form_n for_o civil_a authority_n for_o the_o most_o part_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o arbitrarie_a and_o therefore_o praetory_a or_o dictatory_n con_v in_o the_o pleasure_n of_o those_o upon_o who_o it_o be_v bestow_v for_o they_o have_v power_n of_o life_n and_o death_n and_o authority_n to_o make_v law_n but_o the_o government_n ecclesiastical_a be_v only_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d ministratorie_n bound_v within_o certain_a limit_n and_o law_n by_o god_n himself_o the_o only_o lawgiver_n for_o the_o church_n have_v receive_v law_n of_o believe_v but_o she_o make_v no_o law_n neither_o can_v she_o alter_v those_o law_n she_o have_v but_o must_v preserve_v and_o keep_v they_o and_o have_v no_o power_n but_o as_o a_o deputy_n or_o vicegerent_n and_o that_o at_o the_o will_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o do_v only_o as_o a_o echo_n resound_v and_o deliver_v that_o unto_o other_o which_o it_o have_v hear_v god_n speak_v in_o the_o scripture_n 28.20_o scripture_n malach._n 2_o 6.7_o ezech._n 3.17_o jer._n 23.28_o mat._n 28.20_o 4_o they_o differ_v in_o the_o manner_n both_o of_o their_o judgement_n and_o execution_n for_o the_o magistrate_n judge_v according_a to_o the_o law_n of_o man_n make_v by_o himself_o he_o himself_o weave_v the_o judgement_n web_n he_o condemn_v the_o offender_n against_o his_o will_n yea_o though_o he_o deny_v that_o fact_n yet_o by_o the_o mouth_n of_o witness_n he_o condemn_v he_o as_o true_o guilty_a 18.16_o guilty_a deut_n 19_o 15._o mat._n 18.16_o but_o the_o ecclesiastical_a authority_n judge_v only_o according_a to_o the_o write_a word_n of_o god_n it_o weave_v not_o the_o web_n of_o judgement_n but_o summary_o know_v the_o whole_a matter_n through_o charity_n and_o by_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o sinner_n himself_o and_o then_o when_o he_o have_v confess_v the_o matter_n then_o do_v he_o know_v he_o as_o guilty_a and_o exhort_v he_o to_o repentance_n 7.11_o repentance_n mat._n 15.25_o 16_o 1_o cor_fw-la 5.4.5_o 2_o cor._n 2.7_o &_o 7.11_o moreover_o the_o civil_a authority_n execute_v judgement_n with_o the_o carnal_a sword_n with_o fine_a with_o imprisonment_n martial_a force_n with_o death_n itself_o the_o ecclesiastical_a government_n execute_v her_o decree_n with_o the_o sword_n of_o the_o spirit_n that_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n namely_o with_o censure_n reproof_n suspension_n and_o last_o excommunication_n 1.20_o excommunication_n 2_o thes_n 3_o 14_o 1_o tim._n 1.20_o for_o that_o the_o apostle_n do_v sometime_o use_v corporal_a punishment_n 13.11_o punishment_n act._n 5.5_o &_o 13.11_o it_o be_v a_o matter_n extraordinary_a when_o the_o magistrate_n be_v a_o wicked_a man_n so_o that_o the_o one_o do_v not_o take_v away_o the_o other_o but_o establish_v it_o of_o how_o many_o sort_n be_v the_o ecclesiastical_a authority_n or_o government_n of_o three_o sort_n the_o authority_n of_o ministry_n of_o order_n and_o of_o reproof_n or_o ecclesiastical_a government_n whereof_o hereafter_o in_o his_o proper_a place_n what_o be_v the_o power_n of_o ministry_n it_o be_v the_o authority_n or_o power_n of_o teach_v in_o the_o church_n not_o every_o thing_n but_o that_o alone_a which_o the_o lord_n have_v prescribe_v by_o his_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n and_o of_o administer_a those_o sacrament_n which_o he_o have_v institute_v according_a to_o his_o ordinance_n and_o of_o blessing_n of_o marriage_n according_a to_o the_o perpetual_a use_n of_o the_o church_n which_o power_n do_v belong_v only_o to_o the_o pastor_n though_o oftentimes_o deacon_n in_o these_o thing_n have_v supply_v the_o pastor_n room_n and_o this_o be_v that_o that_o be_v special_o mean_v by_o the_o term_n of_o the_o key_n and_o of_o open_v and_o shut_v 16.19_o shut_v mat._n 16.19_o and_o it_o be_v the_o former_a part_n of_o the_o key_n for_o the_o late_a part_n belong_v unto_o the_o discipline_n of_o excommunication_n what_o be_v the_o first_o part_n of_o these_o key_n nothing_o else_o but_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n commit_v unto_o the_o minister_n whereby_o be_v pronounce_v unto_o the_o believer_n free_a remission_n of_o sin_n through_o christ_n and_o to_o the_o unbeliever_n be_v denounce_v the_o retain_v of_o their_o sin_n for_o that_o which_o christ_n say_v unto_o peter_n math._n 16.19_o i_o will_v give_v thou_o the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n whatsoever_o thou_o shall_v bind_v or_o loose_v upon_o earth_n shall_v be_v ratify_v in_o heaven_n saint_n john_n thus_o proper_o expound_v it_o john_n 20.23_o receive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o sin_n you_o remit_v they_o shall_v be_v remit_v and_o who_o sin_n you_o retain_v they_o shall_v be_v retain_v in_o heaven_n how_o many_o key_n be_v there_o although_o there_o be_v but_o one_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n whereby_o sin_n be_v loose_v and_o bind_v and_o therefore_o there_o be_v but_o one_o key_n to_o open_v and_o shut_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n yet_o notwithstanding_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o diverse_a object_n and_o effect_n the_o key_n be_v account_v to_o be_v two_o fold_n one_o lose_v or_o open_v the_o other_o bind_v or_o shut_v inasmuch_o as_o the_o same_o gospel_n be_v the_o power_n of_o god_n to_o salvation_n to_o every_o one_o that_o believe_v ro._n 1.16_o &_o the_o savour_n of_o death_n unto_o death_n to_o every_o one_o that_o do_v not_o believe_v 2._o cor._n 2.16_o the_o lose_a key_n be_v that_o part_n of_o the_o ministry_n whereby_o remission_n of_o sin_n or_o absolution_n from_o sin_n in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n be_v pronounce_v unto_o the_o believer_n according_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n sometime_o public_o and_o sometime_o private_o and_o so_o heaven_n be_v open_v and_o the_o believer_n be_v loose_v and_o set_v at_o liberty_n by_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n from_o the_o bond_n of_o sin_n which_o hold_v we_o in_o captivity_n yea_o from_o death_n and_o everlasting_a damnation_n and_o be_v declare_v to_o be_v a_o heir_n of_o life_n eternal_a 20.23_o eternal_a luk._n 1.77_o act._n 2.38_o joh._n 20.23_o the_o bind_a key_n be_v the_o other_o part_n of_o the_o ministry_n whereby_o the_o retention_n of_o their_o sin_n be_v denounce_v unto_o the_o unbeliever_n and_o disobedient_a and_o so_o heaven_n be_v shut_v unto_o they_o &_o they_o be_v bind_v that_o be_v they_o remain_v captive_v in_o the_o chain_n of_o sin_n and_o be_v adjudge_v unto_o death_n and_o damnation_n unless_o repentance_n follow_v and_o those_o key_n be_v of_o such_o weight_n and_o efficacy_n that_o whatsoever_o be_v open_v or_o remit_v and_o likewse_n whatsoever_o be_v shut_v or_o retain_v in_o earth_n by_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v say_v also_o to_o be_v open_v lose_a and_o remit_v and_o contrary_o to_o be_v shut_v bind_v and_o retain_v in_o heaven_n according_a to_o that_o luke_n 10.16_o he_o that_o hear_v you_o hear_v i_o he_o that_o despise_v you_o despise_v i_o and_o joh._n 7.18.36_o he_o that_o believe_v shall_v be_v save_v he_o that_o believe_v not_o be_v already_o condemn_v so_o that_o indeed_o the_o key_n of_o the_o ministry_n be_v but_o one_o but_o in_o use_n double_a but_o he_o that_o believe_v the_o gospel_n by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n bring_v also_o faith_n which_o be_v as_o it_o be_v another_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n whereon_o
depend_v this_o power_n not_o upon_o the_o person_n or_o worthiness_n of_o the_o minister_n for_o indeed_o they_o can_v proper_o either_o bind_v or_o loose_v any_o man_n or_o open_a or_o shut_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n unto_o any_o man_n at_o their_o pleasure_n but_o it_o depend_v upon_o their_o lawful_a ministry_n or_o rather_o upon_o god_n himself_o who_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v powerful_a in_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n as_o often_o as_o the_o minister_n do_v due_o execute_v his_o office_n 4.12_o office_n heb_n 4.12_o in_o which_o sense_n those_o say_n mark_v 2.7_o who_o can_v forgive_v sin_n but_o god_n alone_o namely_o in_o his_o own_o right_n and_o by_o his_o own_o authority_n and_o that_o john_n 20_o 23._o who_o sin_n you_o remit_v namely_o instrumental_o or_o by_o preach_v in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n they_o be_v remit_v must_v be_v reconcile_v to_o who_o be_v these_o key_n give_v not_o to_o peter_n alone_o but_o equal_o to_o all_o the_o apostle_n and_o to_o the_o faithful_a pastor_n of_o all_o age_n to_o who_o christ_n say_v receive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n if_o you_o remit_v the_o sin_n of_o any_o they_o be_v remit_v unto_o they_o if_o you_o retain_v the_o sin_n of_o any_o they_o be_v retain_v john_n 20.23_o which_o be_v the_o other_o part_n of_o ecclesiastical_a power_n it_o be_v call_v the_o power_n of_o order_n because_o it_o have_v a_o certain_a and_o set_v rule_n namely_o the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o it_o must_v always_o follow_v and_o it_o be_v rhar_n power_n of_o the_o church_n whereby_o it_o be_v occupy_v both_o about_o doctrine_n and_o the_o principle_n of_o faith_n and_o be_v calll_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d doctrinal_a and_o also_o about_o the_o make_n of_o law_n in_o the_o church_n for_o the_o outward_a government_n thereof_o and_o be_v special_o call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v ordain_v or_o appoint_v what_o be_v the_o power_n of_o the_o church_n concern_v doctrine_n it_o be_v of_o two_o sort_n common_a and_o special_a common_a be_v the_o common_a right_n belong_v to_o the_o whole_a church_n not_o to_o the_o pastor_n only_o but_o to_o every_o member_n thereof_o 1_o to_o keep_v and_o preserve_v the_o scripture_n with_o very_a great_a faithfulness_n like_o a_o notary_n or_o register_n diligent_o to_o read_v they_o and_o not_o by_o way_n of_o authority_n to_o judge_v of_o the_o scripture_n for_o the_o church_n itself_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o scripture_n but_o to_o judge_v according_a to_o the_o scripture_n and_o to_o distinguish_v and_o discern_v like_o a_o moderator_n the_o true_a natural_a and_o right_a scripture_n from_o the_o false_a imaginary_a and_o counterfeit_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n be_v their_o guide_n for_o the_o sheep_n know_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o shepherd_n john_n 10.4_o 2._o to_o know_v admit_v and_o approve_v true_a doctrine_n out_o of_o the_o scripture_n john_n 5.39_o search_v the_o scripture_n and_o to_o reprove_v false_a doctrine_n mat_n 7.15_o beware_v of_o false_a prophet_n and_o luke_n 12.1_o take_v heed_n of_o the_o leaven_n of_o the_o pharisee_n and_o galat._n 1.8_o if_o any_o man_n teach_v another_o doctrine_n let_v he_o be_v accurse_v whereupon_o augustine_n lib._n 11._o contra_fw-la faustum_n cap._n 5._o the_o scripture_n be_v set_v in_o a_o seat_n on_o high_a whereunto_o every_o faithful_a and_o godly_a understanding_n must_v stoop_v and_o in_o another_o place_n lib._n de_fw-fr religione_fw-la cap._n 31._o it_o be_v lawful_a with_o pure_a heart_n to_o know_v the_o eternal_a law_n but_o to_o judge_v it_o be_v altogether_o unlawful_a and_o wicked_a special_a power_n the_o church_n have_v none_o to_o frame_v new_a article_n of_o faith_n or_o to_o teach_v any_o thing_n beside_o the_o word_n of_o god_n write_v but_o like_o a_o crier_n to_o publish_v and_o preach_v the_o scripture_n to_o propound_v only_o the_o word_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n to_o omit_v nothing_o 〈◊〉_d alter_v nothing_o to_o add_v or_o invent_v nothing_o of_o their_o own_o 19_o own_o deut._n 4.2_o &_o 12_o 32_o reve._n 22.18_o 19_o and_o to_o refer_v all_o thing_n according_a to_o the_o word_n to_o god_n glory_n and_o the_o edification_n of_o the_o church_n furthermore_o so_o to_o expound_v and_o prove_v the_o principle_n out_o of_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n and_o to_o interptete_v the_o same_o scripture_n not_o out_o of_o any_o prejudicate_a opinion_n or_o the_o private_a sense_n of_o any_o one_o man_n but_o out_o of_o the_o fountain_n and_o original_n by_o examination_n of_o every_o several_a word_n by_o observation_n of_o the_o style_n and_o phrase_n of_o the_o scripture_n by_o consideration_n of_o the_o state_n of_o the_o question_n and_o matter_n in_o hand_n and_o of_o the_o thing_n go_v before_o and_o come_v after_o and_o by_o conference_n of_o one_o scripture_n with_o another_o that_o they_o may_v agree_v with_o the_o analogy_n rule_n and_o square_a of_o faith_n brief_o comprehend_v in_o the_o apostle_n creed_n 4.11_o creed_n mat._n 23.8_o &_o 28.20_o rom._n 12.6_o 1_o pet._n 4.11_o last_o to_o take_v away_o all_o ordinance_n or_o rather_o fantasy_n of_o all_o man_n of_o what_o degree_n soever_o they_o be_v that_o the_o decree_n of_o god_n alone_o may_v remain_v firm_a and_o establish_v 2._o cor._n 4.7_o these_o be_v those_o spiritual_a weapon_n mighty_a 4.5_o mighty_a 2_o cor._n 10_o 4.5_o through_o god_n to_o cast_v down_o strong_a hold_n whereby_o the_o faithful_a soldier_n of_o god_n may_v cast_v down_o the_o imagination_n and_o every_o high_a thing_n which_o be_v exalt_v against_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n whereby_o they_o may_v build_v the_o house_n of_o christ_n overthrow_n satan_n feed_v the_o sheep_n drive_v away_o the_o wolf_n instruct_v they_o that_o be_v apt_a to_o learn_v to_o prove_v they_o that_o be_v stubborn_a and_o froward_a last_o whereby_o they_o may_v lighten_v and_o if_o need_v be_v thunder_n and_o rest_v themselves_o upon_o the_o power_n of_o christ_n may_v rule_v and_o govern_v all_o from_o the_o high_a to_o the_o low_a but_o all_o thing_n according_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o so_o as_o no_o man_n must_v take_v unto_o himself_o any_o authority_n to_o teach_v in_o the_o church_n either_o by_o writing_n or_o word_n without_o a_o lawful_a call_n where_o indeed_o order_n prevail_v which_o no_o man_n with_o a_o good_a conscience_n can_v despise_v for_o this_o be_v to_o open_v a_o window_n to_o the_o anabaptistical_n fury_n and_o that_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o prophet_n may_v be_v subject_a to_o the_o prophet_n 1._o cor._n 14.30.31_o albeit_o that_o all_o christian_n ought_v mutual_o to_o teach_v exhort_v reprehend_v and_o comfort_v one_o another_o in_o the_o lord_n and_o that_o all_o household_n shall_v so_o be_v govern_v of_o the_o master_n and_o mistress_n of_o the_o family_n that_o they_o shall_v bear_v a_o representation_n of_o so_o many_o private_a church_n no_o man_n will_v deny_v be_v we_o simple_o to_o hear_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o church_n to_o receive_v whatsoever_o it_o teach_v no_o but_o whatsoever_o it_o be_v teach_v of_o god_n and_o command_v to_o teach_v and_o be_v able_a to_o approve_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v it_o in_o the_o church_n power_n to_o consign_v the_o canon_n of_o scripture_n the_o church_n can_v make_v book_n not_o canonical_a to_o be_v canonical_a but_o only_o be_v a_o mean_n that_o such_o book_n be_v receive_v as_o canonical_a which_o in_o truth_n and_o of_o themselves_o be_v such_o the_o church_n i_o say_v do_v not_o make_v scripture_n to_o be_v authentical_a but_o declare_v it_o to_o be_v so_o for_o that_o only_o be_v call_v authentical_a which_o be_v of_o itself_o sufficient_a which_o commend_v support_v and_o proove_v itself_o and_o from_o itself_o have_v credit_n and_o authority_n may_v not_o yet_o the_o church_n be_v a_o mean_n to_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v a_o word_n write_v and_o other_o thing_n which_o pertain_v to_o salvation_n it_o be_v indeed_o a_o mean_n not_o a_o principal_a mean_n but_o only_o a_o external_a and_o ministerial_a mean_n but_o the_o principal_a cause_n of_o believe_v be_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o the_o church_n be_v a_o less_o principal_a instrument_n that_o be_v by_o which_o not_o for_o which_o we_o believe_v paul_n do_v plant_v and_o apollo_n do_v water_n but_o god_n give_v the_o increase_n 1_o cor._n 3.6_o the_o church_n have_v no_o efficacy_n to_o reveal_v without_o the_o spirit_n neither_o can_v the_o church_n make_v that_o true_a thing_n in_o themselves_o be_v believe_v of_o we_o for_o true_a but_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n she_o do_v commend_v the_o scripture_n which_o be_v her_o chief_a office_n true_o the_o church_n sometime_o may_v compel_v man_n by_o her_o authority_n and_o perpetual_a testimony_n that_o they_o
or_o to_o be_v use_v and_o observe_v in_o write_v those_o law_n and_o humane_a tradition_n 1_o that_o they_o be_v not_o repugnant_a to_o the_o analogy_n of_o faith_n or_o that_o they_o lead_v we_o not_o from_o christ_n or_o be_v superstitious_a of_o which_o sort_n for_o the_o most_o part_n the_o popish_a rite_n be_v neither_o must_v our_o conscience_n be_v entangle_v as_o though_o those_o law_n of_o order_n and_o decency_n be_v for_o that_o cause_n only_o bring_v in_o as_o if_o they_o be_v part_n of_o divine_a worship_n 2_o that_o they_o be_v not_o prefer_v before_o the_o heavenly_a doctrine_n which_o the_o apostle_n receive_v from_o god_n have_v deliver_v nei●●●●_n must_v those_o law_n be_v eternal_a or_o immutable_a but_o as_o necessity_n shall_v require_v mutable_a 3_o that_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v unprofitable_a ridiculous_a foolish_a &_o parasitical_a and_o operative_a shall_v not_o be_v appoint_v for_o a_o grave_n honest_a and_o profitable_a order_n such_o as_o those_o which_o the_o papacy_n do_v command_v of_o auricular_a confession_n the_o difference_n of_o meat_n day_n and_o apparel_n vow_a peregrination_n and_o the_o like_a 4_o that_o the_o church_n be_v not_o burden_v with_o the_o multitude_n of_o those_o precept_n as_o be_v do_v in_o popery_n and_o the_o true_a and_o pure_a worship_n of_o god_n be_v oppress_v as_o it_o be_v once_o do_v of_o the_o pharisy_n 23.4_o pharisy_n mat._n 23.4_o and_o so_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n be_v make_v void_a in_o respect_n of_o man_n 15.10_o man_n mat_n 15.3_o mar._n 7.13_o act._n 15.10_o that_o they_o do_v not_o degenerate_a into_o superstition_n or_o impiety_n that_o there_o be_v no_o merit_n ascribe_v to_o they_o or_o worship_n or_o necessity_n that_o be_v they_o may_v not_o be_v account_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n or_o a_o part_n of_o god_n worship_n and_o that_o of_o themselves_o by_o the_o work_n do_v as_o they_o speak_v which_o if_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v let_v they_o present_o be_v reform_v or_o altogether_o abolish_v by_o the_o example_n of_o ezechias_n which_o break_v in_o piece_n the_o brazen_a serpent_n 4_o serpent_n 2._o reg._n 18_o 4_o and_o last_o we_o must_v beware_v least_o through_o a_o pretence_n of_o indifferency_n they_o offer_v poison_n and_o hide_v a_o deadly_a hook_n under_o a_o honey_n bait_n who_o can_v ratify_v or_o abolish_v those_o law_n in_o particular_a church_n the_o pastor_n by_o the_o sage_a judgement_n of_o the_o consistory_n and_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o christian_a magistrate_n his_o consent_n be_v thereunto_o adjoin_v last_o the_o flock_n be_v certify_v thereof_o &_o approve_v the_o same_o who_o very_o ought_v not_o rash_o to_o forsake_v the_o opinion_n of_o their_o pastor_n and_o superintendent_o be_v confirm_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n &_o sound_a reason_n but_o in_o provincial_a church_n it_o be_v the_o office_n of_o the_o synod_n be_v lawful_o call_v in_o the_o lord_n to_o constitute_v such_o kind_n of_o law_n what_o be_v a_o lawful_a synod_n it_o be_v a_o assembly_n or_o meeting_n and_o council_n either_o of_o certain_a place_n &_o that_o be_v name_v a_o provincial_a synod_n or_o else_o of_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o so_o it_o be_v call_v ecumenical_a or_o universal_a represent_v by_o certain_a choice_n person_n of_o herself_o for_o a_o certain_a time_n as_o pastor_n and_o governor_n be_v remove_v as_o well_o from_o all_o popular_a government_n as_o from_o small_a government_n and_o especial_o from_o antichristian_a tyranny_n that_o they_o may_v expel_v the_o wolf_n and_o compose_v all_o controversy_n which_o be_v raise_v in_o the_o church_n out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n provide_v that_o it_o be_v always_o their_o rule_n that_o they_o may_v maintain_v pure_a doctrine_n and_o appoint_v such_o a_o outward_a cutaxie_n and_o good_a order_n as_o seem_v most_o expedient_a for_o the_o whole_a church_n &c_n church_n act_n 15.2.6_o &c_n &c_n and_o of_o such_o synod_n there_o be_v great_a profit_n 1._o because_o that_o which_o be_v seek_v of_o many_o be_v with_o great_a facility_n obtain_v 2_o because_o error_n &_o heretic_n patron_n of_o error_n be_v more_o easy_o repress_v and_o condemn_v by_o common_a consent_n and_o judgement_n of_o many_o by_o who_o be_v synod_n to_o be_v call_v and_o appoint_v by_o the_o chief_a magistrate_n if_o he_o be_v faithful_a or_o at_o least_o if_o he_o tolerate_v the_o christian_a faith_n who_o also_o either_o by_o himself_o or_o by_o other_o who_o he_o have_v make_v choice_n of_o aught_o to_o be_v precedent_n of_o the_o synod_n for_o it_o be_v the_o office_n of_o the_o magistrate_n as_o the_o nurse_n of_o the_o church_n to_o preserve_v the_o peace_n and_o quiet_a thereof_o but_o so_o that_o he_o do_v submit_v himself_o to_o the_o word_n explain_v by_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o minister_n but_o if_o he_o be_v a_o infidel_n than_o it_o be_v the_o office_n of_o the_o pastor_n to_o have_v regard_n as_o much_o as_o in_o they_o lie_v that_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v no_o whit_n damnify_v and_o mutual_o to_o stir_v up_o each_o other_o that_o by_o a_o common_a consent_n they_o may_v meet_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o church_n without_o any_o prerogative_n of_o place_n to_o choose_v those_o who_o be_v know_v to_o excel_v in_o doctrine_n integrity_n of_o life_n and_o other_o gift_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o laity_n be_v not_o exclude_v as_o it_o be_v manifest_a out_o of_o the_o acts._n chap._n 15.2_o 22.23.25_o but_o especial_o that_o as_o chrst_o do_v sit_v 2.46_o sit_v luk._n 2.46_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o doctor_n so_o now_o he_o must_v be_v present_a and_o bear_v rule_n in_o the_o council_n of_o the_o doctor_n be_v all_o thing_n which_o synod_n decree_v to_o be_v account_v always_o for_o true_a and_o undoubted_a they_o be_v not_o as_o it_o be_v apparent_a by_o the_o second_o nicene_n council_n which_o do_v determine_v against_o the_o word_n of_o god_n for_o the_o worship_v of_o idol_n and_o the_o second_o council_n hold_v at_o ephesus_n where_o the_o heresy_n of_o eutiche_n prevail_v and_o the_o aphrican_a counsel_n where_o cyprian_n be_v where_o it_o be_v establish_v that_o those_o which_o be_v baptize_v by_o heretic_n shall_v be_v rebaptise_v for_o the_o church_n on_o earth_n may_v err_v yea_o be_v gather_v together_o as_o it_o be_v evident_a out_o of_o esay_n 56.10_o jer._n 6.13_o 2.4.11_o 6.13_o exod._n 22.25_o 1_o reg._n 22.6_o 22_o mar_n 12.29_o joh._n 11.2_o 47_o 2_o thess_n 2.4.11_o the_o reason_n be_v because_o the_o church_n on_o earth_n be_v not_o compose_v of_o the_o bless_a angesl_n but_o of_o man_n who_o property_n it_o be_v to_o err_v and_o to_o be_v deceive_v for_o that_o which_o be_v say_v psal_n 89.6_o that_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n be_v in_o the_o congregation_n of_o his_o saint_n it_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v either_o of_o the_o holy_a angel_n live_v in_o heaven_n or_o else_o of_o the_o church_n where_o the_o pure_a preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n sound_v be_v there_o any_o authority_n of_o the_o synod_n there_o be_v but_o that_o which_o do_v depend_v on_o the_o word_n of_o god_n namely_o which_o be_v of_o christ_n promise_n mat._n 18_o 2d_o where_o two_o or_o three_o so_o more_o be_v gather_v together_o in_o my_o name_n there_o be_o i_o in_o the_o the_o midst_n of_o they_o neither_o be_v it_o to_o be_v doubt_v but_o that_o much_o more_o some_o universal_a company_n he_o do_v govern_v by_o his_o spirit_n 5.4_o spirit_n act._n 15_o 2d_o cor._n 5.4_o therefore_o the_o judgment_n of_o synod_n be_v not_o to_o be_v despise_v especial_o of_o those_o where_o christ_n do_v sit_v in_o the_o midst_n but_o withal_o observe_v by_o what_o condition_n christ_n be_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o a_o council_n if_o it_o be_v gather_v together_o in_o his_o name_n and_o the_o scripture_n be_v in_o the_o most_o eminent_a place_n for_o then_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o council_n concern_v that_o opinion_n which_o be_v controversed_a after_o lawful_a examination_n and_o just_a inquiry_n have_v his_o weight_n which_o notwithstanding_o itself_o must_v be_v try_v by_o the_o touchstone_n of_o the_o scripture_n according_a to_o that_o try_v all_o thing_n keep_v that_o which_o be_v good_a 1._o thess_n 5.21_o do_v not_o the_o apostle_n command_v we_o to_o obey_v ruler_n &_o governor_n he._n 13.17_o yes_o verily_a but_o both_o with_o a_o implicit_a condition_n if_o they_o be_v true_a ruler_n &_o let_v not_o the_o word_n of_o god_n the_o volume_n of_o the_o law_n depart_v from_o their_o mouth_n 1.7.8_o mouth_n jos_n 1.7.8_o if_o they_o sit_v in_o moses_n chair_n that_o be_v they_o teach_v the_o doctrine_n of_o moses_n incorrupt_o 23.2_o incorrupt_o mat._n 23.2_o &_o in_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v peculiar_a to_o their_o ministry_n as_o in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n &_o lawful_a
government_n two_o the_o one_o in_o correct_v those_o which_o fall_n the_o other_o in_o exercise_v ecclesiastical_a censure_n how_o manifold_a be_v these_o fall_n twofold_a either_o in_o doctrine_n or_o manner_n what_o be_v the_o fall_n touch_v doctrine_n error_n in_o doctrine_n or_o dogmatic_a opinion_n which_o do_v arise_v either_o of_o sole_a simple_a ignorance_n or_o together_o with_o it_o impiety_n but_o if_o they_o do_v so_o decline_v from_o the_o wholesome_a receive_a doctrine_n that_o despise_v the_o judgement_n both_o of_o god_n and_o the_o church_n their_o opinion_n be_v obstinate_o and_o stubborn_o defend_v and_o the_o concord_n of_o the_o church_n violate_v it_o be_v then_o name_v heresy_n what_o discipline_n be_v here_o to_o be_v use_v ignorant_n man_n ought_v by_o little_a and_o little_a to_o be_v instruct_v 4.2_o instruct_v 1_o cor._n 3_o 2_o rom._n 14.1_o eph._n 4.2_o and_o yet_o malice_n to_o be_v reprove_v both_o by_o private_a and_o public_a admonition_n and_o if_o occasion_n serve_v they_o must_v be_v restrain_v by_o ecclesiastical_a judgement_n before_o the_o consistory_n 3.1_o consistory_n act._n 7.51_o &_o 13.10_o gal._n 3.1_o but_o we_o must_v shun_v a_o heretic_n after_o one_o or_o two_o admonition_n 3.10_o admonition_n tit._n 3.10_o reserve_v the_o magistrate_n office_n to_o himself_o what_o be_v the_o fall_n touch_v manner_n a_o sin_n say_v or_o do_v whereby_o our_o neighbour_n be_v wrong_v and_o it_o be_v twofold_a private_a or_o hide_a and_o public_a or_o manifest_a 18.15.16_o manifest_a mat._n 18.15.16_o that_o be_v hide_v whereof_o one_o or_o few_o be_v guilty_a and_o it_o be_v not_o a_o public_a offence_n and_o again_o it_o be_v commit_v either_o of_o malice_n or_o ignorance_n or_o humane_a weakness_n what_o kind_n of_o discipline_n ought_v here_o to_o be_v observe_v private_a admonition_n be_v to_o be_v use_v &_o that_o according_a to_o christ_n his_o rule_n prescribe_v whereof_o yet_o be_v four_o degree_n 1._o that_o he_o which_o offend_v be_v admonish_v &_o private_o censure_v of_o he_o to_o who_o alone_o that_o sin_n be_v know_v lest_o that_o evil_a do_v grow_v on_o further_a which_o we_o may_v redress_v by_o private_a remedy_n for_o the_o greek_a word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d do_v signify_v to_o thou_o or_o with_o thou_o that_o be_v before_o thou_o or_o thou_o be_v privy_a to_o it_o 2._o that_o if_o he_o shall_v despise_v this_o correction_n he_o be_v again_o admonish_v before_o one_o or_o two_o witness_n 3._o that_o if_o he_o shall_v contemn_v their_o admonition_n he_o be_v admonish_v of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a senate_n 4._o if_o that_o this_o way_n take_v no_o success_n he_o be_v account_v for_o a_o ethnic_a &_o publican_n i._o for_o a_o wicked_a &_o profane_a man_n for_o a_o ethnic_a by_o the_o old_a distinction_n of_o israel_n from_o other_o people_n which_o be_v call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d gentile_n and_o stranger_n among_o the_o hebrew_n and_o aliens_n from_o the_o common_a weal_n of_o israel_n and_o from_o the_o covenant_n of_o promise_n ephe._n 2.12_o be_v he_o which_o be_v profane_a and_o altogether_o a_o alien_n in_o religion_n but_o publican_n which_o among_o the_o roman_n that_o be_v profane_a man_n do_v whole_o addict_v themselves_o to_o exaction_n of_o tribute_n and_o do_v lead_v their_o life_n with_o the_o uncircumcised_a and_o be_v very_o infamous_a by_o reason_n of_o their_o avarice_n and_o they_o be_v repute_v among_o the_o profane_a by_o all_o other_o jew_n and_o they_o be_v call_v sinner_n or_o wicked_a man_n 18.11_o man_n mat._n 9_o 10_o &_o 11.19_o luk._n 7.34_o &_o 18.11_o yet_o notwithstanding_o this_o correction_n be_v wise_o to_o be_v use_v for_o if_o on_o be_v fall_v of_o ignorance_n or_o infirmity_n a_o mild_a admonition_n suffice_v with_o a_o exhortation_n that_o hereafter_o he_o shall_v fear_v such_o a_o fall_n but_o if_o he_o sin_n upon_o malice_n even_o a_o secret_a fault_n be_v more_o severe_o to_o be_v correct_v but_o a_o relapse_n be_v more_o sharp_o to_o be_v handle_v then_o once_o be_v fall_v by_o humane_a frailty_n what_o be_v a_o public_a fall_n or_o sin_n which_o be_v open_o commit_v or_o public_o know_v manifest_a and_o join_v with_o a_o public_a offence_n and_o it_o be_v a_o offence_n which_o be_v commit_v either_o by_o error_n or_o infirmity_n or_o by_o a_o unexpected_a chance_n or_o a_o heinous_a offence_n as_o whoredom_n adultery_n usury_n drunkenness_n theft_n or_o stubborness_n in_o despise_v admonition_n &_o of_o these_o some_o have_v seize_v upon_o the_o multitude_n other_o upon_o few_o of_o the_o multitude_n what_o kind_n of_o discipline_n be_v here_o to_o be_v use_v paul_n rule_n be_v to_o be_v follow_v 1._o tim._n 5.20_o they_o that_o sin_n that_o be_v with_o public_a offence_n so_o that_o no_o other_o inquiry_n need_v to_o be_v make_v or_o else_o be_v convince_v in_o the_o church_n by_o lawful_a witness_n reproove_v before_o all_o that_o other_o may_v be_v afraid_a and_o that_o example_n wherein_o this_o precept_n by_o reprove_v of_o peter_n to_o the_o face_n be_v ratify_v 2.11.14_o ratify_v gal._n 2.11.14_o but_o those_o which_o be_v more_o wicked_a and_o obstinate_a be_v to_o be_v repair_v and_o correct_v in_o the_o common_a assembly_n of_o the_o convocation_n or_o consistory_n but_o here_o take_v heed_n of_o excessive_a rigour_n lest_o that_o the_o remedy_n or_o medicine_n be_v turn_v into_o poison_n severity_n be_v to_o be_v exercise_v say_v augustine_n upon_o the_o sin_n of_o few_o but_o in_o offence_n and_o error_n which_o have_v invade_v the_o multitude_n the_o rule_n of_o the_o same_o father_n be_v to_o be_v observe_v in_o chastize_v our_o brethren_n let_v man_n deal_v as_o merciful_a in_o correct_v as_o he_o can_v but_o that_o which_o he_o can_v let_v he_o patient_o bear_v and_o bewail_v and_o mourn_v for_o with_o love_n who_o have_v this_o power_n of_o correction_n secret_n fault_n be_v to_o be_v correct_v of_o every_o private_a man_n who_o be_v acquaint_v with_o the_o fault_n but_o public_a be_v to_o be_v reprove_v before_o all_o by_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n if_o it_o may_v be_v for_o the_o edify_n of_o the_o church_n or_o else_o by_o ecclesiastical_a censure_n what_o be_v the_o ecclesiastical_a censure_n it_o be_v when_o 5_o when_o 1_o cor_n 5.3_o 4_o 5_o there_o be_v a_o lawful_a examination_n or_o notice_n be_v make_v in_o the_o ecclesiastical_a senate_n of_o they_o who_o have_v fall_v either_o into_o error_n or_o sin_n those_o be_v call_v which_o ought_v to_o be_v call_v and_o both_o the_o guilty_a person_n and_o also_o if_o occasion_n require_v lawful_a witness_n be_v patient_o hear_v then_o convenient_a punishment_n be_v to_o be_v use_v but_o so_o that_o the_o conscience_n of_o the_o offender_n be_v not_o thereby_o either_o cherish_v in_o his_o sin_n or_o be_v overwhelm_v with_o sorrow_n &_o that_o a_o care_n be_v have_v to_o the_o edification_n of_o the_o church_n how_o many_o part_n or_o degree_n be_v there_o of_o ecclesiastical_a correction_n three_o 1._o increpation_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o obiurgation_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d comonefaction_n which_o be_v a_o censure_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o sin_n and_o fit_v to_o the_o edification_n of_o a_o obstinate_a sinner_n or_o else_o of_o such_o of_o a_o one_o which_o do_v true_o confess_v his_o sin_n and_o repent_v for_o it_o 2._o it_o 2._o cor._n 2._o 2._o exclusion_n suspension_n or_o keep_v from_o the_o lord_n supper_n for_o a_o time_n 3_o excommunication_n which_o be_v the_o sentence_n of_o the_o church_n lawful_a notice_n go_v before_o propound_v in_o the_o name_n and_o authority_n of_o god_n whereby_o a_o member_n of_o the_o same_o church_n if_o he_o have_v offend_v the_o church_n by_o any_o crime_n or_o contumacy_n and_o do_v refuse_v to_o repent_v for_o the_o edification_n of_o the_o church_n be_v just_o exclude_v out_o of_o the_o fellowship_n of_o the_o saint_n or_o from_o the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n by_o christ_n commandment_n notwithstanding_o there_o have_v be_v a_o twofold_a kind_n of_o excommunication_n the_o first_o be_v call_v of_o the_o hebrew_n niddui_n that_o be_v a_o seiunction_n or_o exclusion_n from_o the_o common_a assembly_n at_o this_o day_n it_o be_v call_v in_o the_o church_n the_o less_o excommunication_n if_o this_o avail_n not_o another_o shall_v be_v pronounce_v against_o the_o impenitent_a sinner_n which_o the_o hebrew_n call_v cherem_n that_o be_v anathema_n and_o at_o the_o length_n schamatha_n which_o be_v the_o last_o devoue_v or_o execration_n and_o that_o paul_n call_v to_o deliver_v to_o satan_n for_o the_o mortification_n of_o the_o flesh_n that_o the_o spirit_n may_v be_v safe_a 1._o cor._n 5.5_o and_o 1._o tim._n 1.20_o but_o with_o this_o exception_n unless_o he_o repent_v now_o this_o to_o be_v deliver_v to_o
satan_n be_v not_o in_o respect_n of_o bodily_a affliction_n as_o some_o do_v expound_v it_o see_v ecclesiastical_a censure_n do_v not_o appertain_v to_o the_o body_n as_o civil_a do_v but_o proper_o unto_o the_o soul_n but_o among_o the_o jew_n there_o be_v cast_v out_o from_o the_o synagogue_n 9.22_o synagogue_n joh._n 9.22_o and_o to_o be_v cut_v off_o from_o the_o people_n 7.2_o people_n gen._n 17.14_o levit._fw-la 7.2_o and_o to_o be_v repute_v for_o a_o heathen_a and_o publican_n that_o be_v for_o profane_a and_o altogether_o irreligious_a 18.17_o irreligious_a mat._n 18.17_o but_o to_o be_v excommunicate_v among_o christian_n be_v to_o lose_v the_o right_n of_o a_o christian_a city_n until_o he_o repent_v and_o to_o be_v make_v a_o vassal_n of_o satan_n who_o rule_v out_o of_o the_o church_n who_o be_v to_o be_v cite_v to_o this_o censure_n not_o altogether_o alien_n such_o as_o this_o day_n the_o jew_n and_o turk_n be_v neither_o schismatic_n heretic_n and_o such_o as_o have_v make_v a_o secesssion_n altogether_o from_o the_o christian_a church_n or_o such_o as_o never_o do_v associate_v themselves_o to_o the_o true_a church_n but_o those_o especial_o which_o yet_o be_v as_o conversant_a in_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o church_n and_o have_v not_o yet_o manifest_o go_v to_o they_o of_o a_o separation_n the_o apostle_n testify_v if_o any_o be_v name_v a_o brother_n that_o be_v which_o do_v profess_v himself_o a_o member_n of_o the_o church_n be_v a_o adulterer_n a_o covetous_a person_n or_o a_o idolater_n or_o slanderer_n or_o drunkard_n or_o a_o extortioner_n with_o such_o a_o one_o eat_v not_o nor_o have_v any_o commerce_n with_o he_o for_o what_o have_v i_o to_o do_v to_o judge_v of_o they_o without_o do_v not_o you_o judge_v those_o that_o be_v within_o take_v away_o therefore_o the_o evil_a one_o from_o among_o you_o 1._o cor._n 5.11.8_o who_o be_v the_o author_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a censure_n god_n himself_o for_o always_o from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n this_o discipline_n be_v use_v in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n whereby_o the_o church_n in_o general_n be_v not_o only_o discern_v from_o man_n which_o be_v manifest_o profane_a as_o in_o time_n pass_v before_o the_o flood_n the_o son_n of_o god_n that_o be_v the_o godly_a which_o be_v derive_v from_o the_o posterity_n of_o seth_n from_o the_o son_n of_o man_n that_o be_v from_o the_o wicked_a of_o cain_n family_n 4_o family_n gen._n 4.26_o &_o 6_o 4_o but_o those_o which_o do_v misdemeane_v themselves_o be_v cast_v out_o of_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o church_n in_o which_o sense_n the_o ancient_a father_n thought_n cain_n to_o be_v cast_v out_o from_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o those_o which_o be_v of_o mature_a year_n be_v uncircumcised_a if_o they_o do_v neglect_v circumcision_n or_o be_v by_o their_o parent_n neglect_v be_v approve_v of_o they_o be_v cut_v off_o by_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n from_o his_o people_n that_o be_v from_o the_o society_n of_o the_o saint_n 17.14_o saint_n gen._n 17.14_o and_o by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n diverse_a rite_n concern_v pollution_n as_o of_o the_o leprosy_n and_o other_o severing_n purge_n and_o expiation_n 19_o expiation_n levit._fw-la 5_o 1.2_o &_o 13.2.40_o &_o 14.2_o numb_a 5_o 2_o 6_o &_o 19_o be_v appoint_v to_o the_o consistorian_n synagogue_n last_o christ_n himself_o have_v express_o appoint_v this_o order_n be_v as_o we_o have_v learn_v derive_v unto_o we_o from_o the_o church_n of_o israel_n 18.18_o israel_n mat._n 18.18_o and_o paul_n himself_o at_o corinth_n and_o else_o where_o have_v command_v the_o same_o to_o be_v keep_v 1.20_o keep_v 1_o cor._n 5.1_o 2.3.4.5_o etc._n etc._n 1._o tim._n 1.20_o and_o 2._o thes_n 3.14_o say_v 1.2.18_o say_v 1._o cor._n 1.2.18_o if_o any_o harken_v not_o to_o our_o speech_n by_o epistle_n mark_v he_o 4.14_o he_o 1._o tim._n 4.14_o to_o wit_n with_o the_o note_n of_o excommunication_n who_o ought_v to_o have_v the_o power_n of_o excommunication_n the_o bishop_n and_o the_o governor_n of_o the_o church_n which_o the_o pastor_n ought_v to_o denounce_v as_o it_o be_v apparent_a 1._o cor._n 5.4_o say_v paul_n be_v assemble_v with_o my_o spirit_n for_o the_o whole_a church_n ought_v to_o have_v notice_n of_o the_o same_o otherwise_o how_o can_v she_o avoid_v the_o familiar_a society_n of_o the_o party_n excommunicate_v for_o it_o be_v manifest_v when_o christ_n do_v dispute_v of_o this_o thing_n 18.17_o thing_n mat._n 18.17_o that_o he_o mean_v the_o consistory_n or_o the_o ecclesiastical_a senate_n apply_v his_o speech_n to_o the_o custom_n of_o his_o time_n and_o the_o power_n of_o ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n be_v in_o their_o power_n which_o be_v call_v the_o chief_a ruler_n of_o the_o synagogue_n 5.22_o synagogue_n mar._n 5.22_o who_o do_v also_o manage_v the_o affair_n of_o particular_a church_n example_n hereof_o we_o have_v joh._n 9.22_o 16.2_o 9.22_o &_o 12.42_o &_o 16.2_o and_o paul_n 2._o cor._n 16._o say_v that_o it_o be_v sufficient_a that_o such_o a_o man_n be_v rebuke_v not_o in_o private_a not_o public_a before_o the_o whole_a church_n but_o of_o many_o namely_o be_v do_v in_o the_o consistory_n whence_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o all_o the_o excommunication_n of_o that_o antichrist_n of_o rome_n and_o all_o his_o hierarchy_n be_v in_o truth_n none_o at_o all_o how_o far_o forth_o may_v a_o lawful_a convocation_n use_v this_o spiritual_a sword_n not_o at_o their_o own_o arbitrement_n or_o private_a authority_n but._n 1._o by_o a_o precedent_n lawful_a knowledge_n 2._o upon_o just_a cause_n 3._o by_o the_o prescript_n of_o god_n word_n 4._o in_o the_o fear_n of_o the_o lord_n 5._o in_o the_o name_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n that_o be_v god_n name_n be_v call_v on_o as_o it_o beseem_v they_o who_o do_v not_o regard_v theit_n own_o work_n but_o the_o lord_n business_n according_a to_o his_o word_n and_o with_o the_o power_n of_o the_o lord_n 5.4_o lord_n 1_o cor._n 5.4_o 6_o with_o the_o spirit_n of_o meekness_n and_o with_o especial_a clemency_n and_o charity_n 6.9_o charity_n gal_n 6.9_o for_o that_o which_o be_v unlawful_o and_o wicked_o act_v on_o earth_n can_v be_v ratify_v in_o heaven_n upon_o who_o ought_v it_o to_o be_v exercise_v upon_o blaspheemer_n enemy_n of_o god_n glory_n &_o his_o truth_n obstinate_a sinner_n heretic_n and_o seducer_n worshipper_n of_o idol_n schismatic_n or_o sectary_n perjure_a or_o faithless_a and_o on_o open_a malefactor_n as_o rebel_n to_o the_o admonition_n of_o their_o superior_n murderer_n whoremonger_n usurer_n railer_n drunkard_n extortioner_n inordinate_a liver_n and_o such_o as_o be_v condemn_v in_o their_o own_o conscience_n and_o after_o their_o conscience_n have_v be_v convince_v do_v persevere_v in_o their_o obstinacy_n unbridled_a uncorrigible_a despise_v all_o christi●●_n admonition_n but_o present_a not_o absent_a 11._o absent_a mat._n 18.17_o 1_o cor._n 5.11_o 2_o thess_n 3_o 1●_n tit._n 3_o 11._o from_o what_o thing_n be_v the_o excommunicate_a person_n exclude_v not_o only_o from_o the_o participation_n of_o the_o sacrament_n for_o this_o be_v only_o a_o suspension_n but_o from_o the_o whole_a body_n and_o benefit_n of_o the_o church_n and_o from_o the_o ordinary_a conversation_n speech_n cohabitation_n &_o society_n of_o life_n with_o other_o member_n of_o the_o church_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d for_o we_o must_v have_v no_o voluntary_a familiar_a &_o for_o our_o mind_n sake_n commixtion_n consociation_n or_o fellowship_n with_o any_o excommunicate_a person_n 16.17_o person_n rom_n 16.17_o 2._o thes_n 3.14_o couple_v not_o or_o consociate_v not_o yourselves_o to_o he_o 1._o cor._n 5.11_o but_o he_o must_v be_v as_o a_o ethnic_a and_o publican_n to_o we_o as_o christ_n do_v advertise_v us._n mat._n 18.17_o neither_o must_v we_o eat_v with_o he_o neither_o receive_v he_o into_o our_o house_n neither_o salute_v he_o 1._o cor._n 5.11_o 5.10_o 5.11_o 2._o joh._n 5.10_o but_o we_o must_v fly_v from_o he_o and_o yet_o so_o as_o our_o child_n wife_n &_o subject_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o magistrate_n be_v not_o exempt_v from_o due_a revetence_n lest_o there_o be_v a_o confusion_n of_o all_o neither_o must_v they_o for_o the_o offence_n of_o the_o master_n of_o the_o family_n be_v account_v as_o excommunic_n te_fw-mi provide_v that_o they_o do_v not_o by_o their_o conversation_n with_o he_o give_v any_o assent_n to_o his_o crime_n as_o for_o other_o they_o must_v avoid_v a_o excommunicate_a person_n notwithstanding_o he_o be_v not_o to_o be_v deprive_v of_o the_o benefit_n of_o the_o 14.2_o the_o 1_o cor._n 14.2_o word_n by_o which_o mean_v the_o offender_n may_v be_v reclaim_v 2._o thess_n 3_o 14_o if_o any_o do_v not_o yield_v obedience_n to_o our_o speech_n have_v no_o fellowship_n with_o he_o yet_o say_v the_o apostle_n admonish_v he_o as_o
a_o brother_n we_o must_v not_o therefore_o cease_v from_o admonition_n from_o instruction_n from_o correction_n nor_o leave_v off_o to_o eat_v or_o drink_v with_o he_o if_o necessity_n shall_v constrain_v we_o but_o we_o must_v try_v all_o mean_n whereby_o if_o it_o be_v possible_a he_o may_v be_v a_o new_a man_n we_o must_v not_o i_o say_v sever_v ourselves_o in_o brotherly_a charity_n from_o he_o who_o be_v sejoin_v from_o we_o in_o external_a society_n for_o this_o correction_n must_v be_v stretch_v no_o further_o than_o charity_n and_o other_o divine_a precept_n do_v permit_v for_o excommunication_n be_v not_o a_o sword_n of_o a_o enemy_n which_o go_v about_o to_o kill_v we_o but_o it_o be_v the_o sword_n of_o the_o physician_n which_o go_v about_o to_o heal_v we_o as_o the_o ancient_a have_v teach_v as_o for_o deny_v they_o burial_n be_v dead_a in_o the_o churchyard_n the_o scripture_n do_v say_v nothing_o how_o long_o do_v excommunication_n last_o so_o long_o as_o the_o party_n excommunicate_a do_v estrange_v himself_o manifest_o from_o the_o doctrine_n and_o life_n of_o christ_n 16.17_o christ_n rom._n 16.17_o but_o when_o he_o shall_v repent_v and_o show_v in_o his_o word_n and_o action_n some_o testimony_n of_o a_o better_a life_n than_o forthwith_o he_o be_v to_o be_v receive_v into_o the_o church_n again_o for_o lose_v and_o bind_v consist_v of_o contrary_a cause_n &_o of_o the_o same_o person_n etc._n person_n 2._o cor._n 2_o 5._o etc._n etc._n as_o then_o the_o church_n have_v authority_n to_o cast_v out_o semblable_o it_o have_v power_n to_o receive_v sinner_n again_o who_o repentance_n be_v sufficient_o detect_v what_o be_v the_o scope_n and_o end_n of_o excommunication_n 1._o that_o wicked_a man_n be_v correct_v scandal_n be_v take_v away_o and_o the_o church_n keep_v pure_a as_o it_o be_v when_o the_o sacrament_n so_o far_o as_o possible_o may_v be_v remain_v undefiled_a and_o it_o be_v not_o defame_v by_o the_o contumely_n of_o god_n and_o the_o offence_n of_o many_o as_o if_o it_o be_v a_o receptacle_n of_o unclean_a person_n 12_o person_n mat._n 7_o 6_o rom._n 2.2_o ●4_n 1_o cor._n 5_o 12_o 2._o that_o no_o contagion_n be_v derive_v to_o other_o citizen_n of_o the_o church_n for_o as_o it_o be_v common_o say_v morbida_fw-la facta_fw-la pecus_fw-la totum_fw-la corrumpit_fw-la ●uile_n ne_o perdat_fw-la reliquas_fw-la est_fw-la separanda_fw-la grege_fw-la one_o scab_a sheep_n infect_v the_o rest_n such_o to_o remove_v i_o think_v it_o best_o and_o a_o little_a leven_n do_v leven_v the_o whole_a lump_n 1._o cor_n 5.6_o gal._n 5.9_o 3._o that_o the_o party_n excommunicate_v be_v at_o the_o least_o somewhat_o ashamed_a may_v return_v home_o again_o repent_v and_o desist_v from_o evil_a and_o to_o be_v save_v this_o paul_n call_v to_o deliver_v to_o satan_n for_o the_o mortification_n of_o the_o flesh_n that_o his_o soul_n may_v be_v safe_a that_o be_v this_o punishment_n be_v inflict_v on_o he_o such_o sorrow_n and_o contrition_n such_o a_o remorse_n &_o shame_n be_v begin_v in_o he_o that_o the_o flesh_n or_o old_a man_n which_o lead_v he_o headlong_o into_o this_o sin_n may_v be_v tame_v crucify_a and_o kill_v and_o the_o soul_n that_o be_v the_o inward_a man_n or_o new_a man_n which_o altogether_o seem_v to_o yield_v in_o the_o combat_n may_v revive_v raise_v up_o itself_o go_v on_o and_o increase_v and_o so_o be_v save_v that_o so_o the_o sin_n may_v die_v and_o the_o man_n may_v live_v say_v augustine_n sermon_n 32._o upon_o the_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n 1.20_o apostle_n 1_o cor._n 5.5_o 1_o tim._n 1.20_o according_a to_o the_o proverb_n after_o correction_n insume_v amendment_n 14_o amendment_n 2_o thess_n 3_o 14_o and_o so_o he_o that_o repent_v may_v be_v save_v as_o it_o be_v expound_v 2._o tim._n 2.25_o 26._o that_o he_o recover_v soundness_n of_o judgement_n may_v pass_v out_o of_o the_o devil_n snare_n wherein_o he_o be_v captivate_v and_o 1._o pet._n 4._o that_o his_o flesh_n be_v mortify_v he_o may_v live_v unto_o god_n that_o be_v in_o spirit_n and_o may_v die_v to_o sin_n and_o live_v to_o righteousness_n 4._o that_o other_o citizen_n of_o the_o church_n may_v fear_v and_o be_v keep_v in_o order_n 5._o that_o the_o punishment_n which_o for_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o church_n be_v threaten_v by_o god_n may_v be_v avoid_v what_o be_v the_o effect_n of_o excommunication_n it_o be_v not_o a_o brutish_a thunder_n bolt_n or_o a_o lightning_n out_o of_o a_o basin_n as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o proverb_n that_o be_v it_o be_v not_o a_o idle_a scarcrowe_n or_o bugbear_n to_o fear_v child_n for_o god_n have_v ratify_v that_o in_o heaven_n the_o which_o for_o just_a cause_n be_v true_o bind_v on_o earth_n by_o his_o true_a church_n 20.20_o church_n mat._n 18.18_o joh._n 20.20_o but_o a_o judgement_n most_o fearful_a in_o god_n church_n yet_o so_o as_o if_o those_o who_o be_v censurer_n shall_v become_v god_n instrument_n that_o be_v if_o any_o one_o be_v condemn_v by_o the_o lawful_a sentence_n of_o the_o true_a church_n out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n otherwise_o it_o be_v better_a to_o be_v seclude_v from_o the_o society_n of_o the_o wicked_a then_o to_o be_v repute_v as_o one_o of_o they_o e_o for_o a_o unjust_a excommunication_n be_v a_o blessing_n 28_o blessing_n gen._n 12.3_o mat._n 5.11_o psa_fw-la 109_o 28_o further_o the_o party_n excommunicate_a be_v deliver_v to_o satan_n that_o be_v he_o be_v effectual_o declare_v to_o be_v under_o the_o power_n and_o kingdom_n of_o satan_n and_o that_o he_o have_v no_o title_n to_o christ_n his_o kingdom_n but_o be_v give_v over_o to_o destruction_n until_o such_o time_n as_o he_o have_v testify_v his_o true_a repentance_n 7.8_o repentance_n 1_o cor._n 5.4_o 2_o cor._n 2.6_o 7.8_o for_o during_o the_o time_n of_o of_o excommunication_n he_o be_v bind_v out_o of_o the_o church_n who_o be_v deliver_v to_o satan_n who_o band_n be_v after_o loose_v by_o repentance_n what_o example_n have_v you_o of_o this_o excommunication_n 1._o in_o adam_n and_o eve_n 11_o eve_n gen_n 3_o 24_o 1●_n 4_o 11_o and_o cain_n i_fw-it 2._o in_o those_o leprous_a person_n 1.2.3_o person_n nu._n 5_o 1.2.3_o and_o miriam_n moses_n sister_n god_n himself_o be_v the_o author_n thereof_o 6_o thereof_o leu._n 5.2_o 6_o she_o be_v seclude_v seven_o day_n out_o of_o the_o tent_n and_o afterward_o restore_v again_o in_o the_o separation_n of_o the_o unclean_a till_o expiation_n be_v make_v 12_o make_v ●u●_n 9_o 6_o 11_o &_o 12_o in_o the_o prohibition_n of_o the_o pollute_a from_o the_o eat_n of_o the_o sacrament_n 2.15_o sacrament_n chr._n 30_o 2.15_o under_o pain_n of_o cut_v off_o 20._o off_o leu_n 7_o 20._o whereupon_o we_o read_v that_o those_o who_o be_v defile_v celebrate_v the_o passeover_n not_o the_o first_o month_n with_o the_o rest_n but_o the_o month_n follow_v their_o expiation_n 3_o in_o that_o incestuous_a corinthian_a 6_o corinthian_a 1_o cor._n 5.3.4_o 6_o 4._o in_o hymeneus_n and_o alexander_n 1.20_o alexander_n 1_o tim._n 1.20_o as_o also_o in_o the_o emperor_n theodosius_n who_o ambrose_n do_v excommunicate_a for_o the_o unjust_a slaughter_n commit_v at_o thessalonica_n what_o be_v anathema_n the_o grecian_n so_o call_v thing_n give_v or_o dedicate_v for_o the_o benefit_n and_o treasure_n of_o the_o church_n because_o they_o be_v wont_a to_o be_v consecrate_v and_o hang_v on_o the_o wall_n and_o pillar_n of_o the_o temple_n whereupon_o the_o temple_n of_o jerusalem_n be_v say_v to_o be_v adorn_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d with_o donation_n 21.5_o donation_n l●●_n 21.5_o but_o the_o word_n anathema_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d although_o it_o be_v derive_v from_o the_o same_o word_n yet_o it_o have_v diverse_a signification_n and_o be_v all_o one_o with_o that_o which_o the_o hebrew_n call_v herem_n that_o be_v execrable_a or_o devote_a to_o perdition_n as_o rom._n 9.3_o in_o this_o other_o signification_n anathema_n be_v when_o he_o who_o be_v incorrigible_a and_o desperate_a whether_o he_o be_v a_o heretic_n or_o blasphemer_n or_o any_o other_o way_n notorious_o wicked_a be_v addict_v and_o devote_a to_o perpetual_a death_n and_o destruction_n gal._n 1.8_o if_o any_o preach_v unto_o you_o any_o other_o thing_n than_o we_o have_v preach_v let_v he_o be_v accurse_v anathema_n and_o 1._o cor._n 16.22_o if_o any_o do_v not_o love_v that_o be_v if_o any_o do_v hate_n and_o persecute_v the_o name_n of_o christ_n let_v he_o be_v anathema_n maranatha_n which_o be_v the_o last_o execration_n the_o reason_n whereof_o as_o we_o hardly_o know_v so_o the_o use_n of_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v very_o rare_a so_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n chore_n dathan_n and_o abiron_n be_v excommunicate_v or_o anathematise_v and_o as_o it_o be_v bind_v to_o eternal_a destruction_n be_v swallow_v up_o
the_o common_a discipline_n what_o be_v peculiar_a discipline_n it_o be_v proper_a to_o the_o clergy_n or_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n whereby_o they_o be_v keep_v in_o their_o duty_n whereof_o there_o be_v three_o part_n the_o first_o be_v 1_o prohibition_n prescribe_v by_o the_o cannon_n which_o the_o ancient_a bishop_n have_v impose_v upon_o themselves_o and_o to_o their_o order_n such_o be_v 1_o that_o no_o clergy_n man_n shall_v spend_v his_o time_n in_o hunt_v dice_a or_o banckete_v 2._o that_o such_o shall_v not_o be_v usurer_n or_o merchant_n 3_o that_o they_o be_v not_o present_a at_o dance_n or_o such_o like_a but_o in_o the_o church_n each_o minister_n shall_v by_o preach_v prayer_n and_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n diligent_o do_v his_o duty_n the_o second_o be_v execution_n which_o be_v especial_o commit_v to_o the_o bishop_n who_o to_o that_o purpose_n do_v twice_o or_o often_o in_o the_o year_n call_v provincial_a synod_n in_o which_o as_o well_o bishop_n themselves_o as_o other_o clergy_n man_n be_v censure_v the_o three_o be_v the_o punish_v of_o minister_n whereof_o there_o be_v those_o degree_n reprehension_n translation_n deposition_n and_o keep_v from_o the_o communion_n what_o use_n be_v there_o of_o ecclesiastical_a government_n it_o be_v 1._o as_o a_o bridle_n to_o curb_v and_o tame_v such_o as_o spurn_v against_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n 2_o it_o be_v a_o spur_n to_o such_o as_o be_v dull_a 3._o it_o be_v a_o rod_n wherewith_o they_o that_o have_v more_o greevous_o offend_v be_v in_o compassion_n and_o according_a to_o the_o mild_a spirit_n of_o christ_n chastise_v of_o the_o church_n what_o be_v contrary_a to_o this_o doctrine_n 1_o the_o peevishness_n of_o the_o donatist_n and_o anabaptist_n who_o under_o pretence_n of_o a_o more_o austere_a discipline_n acknowledge_v no_o congregation_n of_o christ_n but_o such_o a_o one_o as_o be_v each_o way_n conspicuous_a for_o angelical_a prefection_n for_o want_v whereof_o they_o by_o a_o impious_a schism_n do_v divide_v themselves_o from_o the_o flock_n of_o christ_n 2_o the_o abuse_n of_o excommunication_n a_o example_n whereof_o we_o have_v in_o diotrephes_n 12_o diotrephes_n 3_o joh_n 12_o who_o desire_v pre-eminence_n in_o the_o church_n and_o cast_v out_o such_o as_o he_o like_v not_o 3_o that_o tyrannical_a authority_n which_o pope_n and_o papal_a prelate_n do_v challenge_v to_o themselves_o in_o their_o jurisdiction_n to_o wit_v a_o judgement_n to_o determine_v both_o of_o the_o great_a and_o less_o excommunication_n which_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o power_n to_o excomunicate_v 4_o their_o error_n who_o either_o bring_v into_o the_o church_n a_o oligarchie_n one_o the_o one_o part_n or_o a_o universality_n for_o the_o whole_a church_n on_o the_o other_o by_o which_o they_o will_v have_v this_o jurisdiction_n execute_v and_o think_v that_o with_o every_o thing_n the_o whole_a church_n shall_v be_v acquaint_v abuse_v for_o this_o purpose_n math._n 18.17_o tell_v the_o church_n and._n 1._o cor._n 5.4_o when_o you_o be_v gather_v &c_n &c_n 5_o that_o foolish_a and_o ridiculous_a excommunication_n use_v by_o papist_n of_o locust_n mouse_n eel_n flee_v etc._n etc._n to_o the_o apparent_a abuse_n of_o the_o church_n power_n as_o also_o that_o they_o excommunicate_v man_n for_o the_o profession_n of_o christ_n not_o pay_v of_o debt_n contempt_n of_o the_o pope_n decree_n or_o legacy_n to_o monk_n 6_o their_o error_n who_o do_v attribute_v the_o part_n of_o this_o government_n to_o the_o christian_n magistrate_n either_o in_o bind_v or_o lose_v as_o also_o their_o error_n who_o where_o there_o be_v a_o christian_n magistrate_n will_v have_v he_o to_o have_v nothing_o to_o do_v with_o those_o ecclesiastical_a censure_n and_o with_o these_o the_o neglect_n of_o such_o governor_n as_o punish_v not_o offender_n 7_o of_o the_o papist_n which_o bring_v cause_n mere_o civil_a to_o the_o ecclesiastical_a court_n 8_o the_o superstitious_a and_o toyish_a popish_a fast_n whereas_o what_o day_n we_o shall_v fast_o or_o not_o fast_o as_o augustine_n say_v neither_o christ_n nor_o his_o apostle_n have_v determine_v 9_o all_o law_n for_o choice_n of_o meat_n forbid_v some_o as_o flesh_n butter_n cheese_n egg_n etc_n wherein_o consist_v the_o fast_a of_o papist_n for_o in_o that_o the_o apostle_n say_v it_o be_v good_a not_o to_o eat_v flesh_n etc._n etc._n rom._n 14.21_o &_o he_o that_o be_v weak_a eat_v herb_n he_o speak_v not_o this_o simple_o for_o they_o shall_v he_o contrary_a himself_o and_o christ_n but_o as_o it_o be_v use_v with_o offence_n to_o the_o weak_a he_o than_o speak_v of_o such_o weak_a jew_n who_o for_o fear_n lest_o they_o shall_v in_o the_o market_n light_n upon_o some_o such_o meat_n as_o moses_n have_v forbid_v rather_o will_v eat_v herb_n then_o buy_v meat_n in_o the_o shambles_n yet_o christ_n will_v not_o have_v his_o disciple_n to_o follow_v the_o austerecourse_n of_o john_n baptist_n life_n and_o diet_n but_o show_v that_o it_o belong_v to_o the_o age_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n and_o in_o no_o sort_n to_o be_v practise_v in_o the_o liberty_n of_o the_o new_a b._n 16_o b._n mat._n 9.15_o 16_o 10_o these_o sacrilegious_a opinion_n of_o merit_a god_n favour_n of_o appease_v his_o wrath_n satisfie_v for_o sin_n and_o deliverance_n from_o purgatory_n by_o fasting_n due_o observe_v all_o which_o if_o they_o be_v true_a doubtless_o christ_n die_v in_o vain_a gal._n 2.21_o for_o they_o grant_v indeed_o that_o man_n of_o himself_o can_v not_o render_v unto_o god_n any_o thing_n equivalent_a for_o sin_n but_o yet_o they_o urge_v that_o it_o with_o god_n acceptation_n and_o by_o communication_n of_o christ_n merit_n they_o may_v 11_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o ancient_a heretic_n call_v esses_n make_v under_o colour_n of_o wisdom_n worship_n and_o humility_n that_o man_n shall_v not_o taste_v certain_a meat_n and_o shall_v use_v such_o immoderate_a abstinence_n as_o will_v hurt_v the_o body_n contratie_n to_o that_o coloss_n 2_o 21._o 12_o the_o heresy_n of_o the_o marcionite_n and_o the_o tatian_o of_o encratites_n in_o english_a we_o may_v call_v they_o continent_n which_o teach_v man_n to_o despise_v the_o work_n of_o the_o creator_n and_o carthusian_n who_o will_v eat_v no_o fl●sh_n the_o severians_n who_o will_v drink_v no_o wine_n montanus_n his_o xerophagie_n that_o be_v eat_v of_o dry_a meat_n to_o demerit_n god_n favour_n to_o purge_v away_o original_a sin_n increase_v in_o virtue_n &_o to_o get_v a_o great_a reward_n 13_o the_o error_n of_o such_o as_o allow_v no_o fast_n at_o all_o but_o be_v lead_v on_o by_o the_o gourmandize_v spirit_n of_o surfeit_v &_o drunkenness_n become_v belly-god_n 14_o the_o dissolute_a life_n of_o the_o romish_a clergy_n all_o which_o to_o have_v repeat_v be_v a_o sufficient_a refutation_n the_o five_o and_o forty_o common_a place_n of_o vow_n what_o be_v call_v a_o vow_n some_o will_v have_v it_o call_v votum_fw-la that_o be_v to_o say_v a_o vow_n a_fw-fr voluntate_fw-la that_o be_v from_o the_o will_n as_o it_o be_v proceed_v from_o will_n advisednes_n or_o purpose_n it_o be_v call_v of_o the_o greecian_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d act._n 21.23_o we_o have_v four_o man_n which_o have_v make_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v a_o vow_n and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v a_o promise_n of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v to_o promise_v because_o he_o which_o make_v a_o promise_n say_v eustathius_n that_o be_v he_o which_o have_v vow_v any_o thing_n have_v lay_v a_o burden_n upon_o himself_o so_o that_o a_o vow_n be_v some_o voluntary_a thing_n which_o even_o upon_o a_o deliberate_a purpose_n or_o free_v will_v some_o man_n have_v undertake_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o it_o be_v a_o burden_n upon_o himself_o as_o every_o man_n wish_v in_o his_o heart_n so_o let_v he_o give_v not_o grudginglie_o or_o of_o necessity_n for_o god_n love_v a_o cheerful_a giver_n 2_o cor._n 9.7_o and_o so_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d signify_v a_o vow_n not_o only_o a_o prayer_n and_o a_o desire_n of_o obtain_v something_o but_o a_o promise_n of_o offer_v something_o to_o god_n but_o yet_o let_v the_o vow_n be_v agree_v with_o the_o prescript_n or_o rule_v of_o the_o law_n for_o the_o scripture_n do_v call_v a_o vow_n not_o every_o promise_n which_o may_v be_v make_v to_o every_o man_n but_o only_o that_o which_o be_v make_v to_o god_n and_o that_o willing_o &_o religious_o therefore_o that_o which_o among_o man_n be_v call_v a_o promise_n in_o respect_n of_o god_n be_v term_v a_o vow_n for_o a_o promise_n make_v to_o a_o man_n have_v not_o the_o manner_n of_o a_o vow_n sometime_o metonymicallie_o it_o signify_v a_o thing_n promise_v with_o a_o vow_n 13._o vow_n psal_n 66_o 13._o and_o
it_o use_v these_o mean_n help_n and_o instrument_n to_o work_v our_o salvation_n in_o which_o sense_n the_o church_n be_v say_v to_o be_v sanctify_v and_o wash_v in_o the_o laver_n of_o water_n through_o the_o word_n ephe._n 5.16_o tit._n 3.5_o baptism_n be_v call_v the_o laver_n of_o regeneration_n &_o renonation_n and_o act._n 22.16_o be_v baptize_v &_o wash_v from_o thy_o sin_n in_o call_v upon_o his_o name_n hereupon_o augustine_n have_v this_o say_n whence_o come_v this_o virtue_n to_o the_o water_n that_o it_o shall_v touch_v the_o body_n 80_o in_o joh._n trac_n 80_o and_o wash_v the_o heart_n but_o that_o the_o word_n cause_v it_o not_o because_o it_o be_v speak_v but_o because_o it_o be_v believe_v and_o that_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v tie_v to_o the_o outward_a sign_n peter_n teach_v speak_v thus_o of_o baptism_n 1_o pet._n 3.21_o it_o save_v we_o not_o that_o baptism_n whereby_o the_o filthiness_n of_o the_o flesh_n be_v cast_v away_o but_o whereby_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o a_o good_a conscience_n make_v request_n to_o god_n by_o the_o resurrection_n of_o jesus_n christ_n cornelius_n receive_v grace_n before_o baptism_n 10.5_o baptism_n act._n 10.5_o for_o god_n use_v mean_n and_o instrument_n to_o work_v our_o salvation_n but_o yet_o so_o as_o he_o work_v by_o his_o own_o proper_a and_o inward_a virtue_n most_o free_o when_o how_o and_o in_o who_o he_o will_v and_o do_v not_o yield_v up_o his_o power_n and_o virtue_n to_o the_o outward_a sign_n as_o also_o in_o that_o seven_o time_n wash_v of_o naaman_n the_o syrian_a in_o jordan_n be_v not_o place_v the_o purge_n of_o he_o from_o his_o leprosy_n which_o then_o the_o power_n of_o god_n alone_o wrought_v in_o he_o ●4_n he_o 2._o king_n 9_o ●4_n hence_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o some_o receive_v grace_n without_o the_o sacrament_n as_o abraham_n be_v justify_v before_o circumcision_n and_o the_o thief_n on_o the_o cross_n without_o baptism_n and_o the_o lord_n supper_n some_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n and_o not_o grace_n because_o they_o want_v faith_n as_o judas_n of_o who_o augustine_n say_v he_o receive_v the_o bread_n of_o the_o lord_n but_o not_o that_o bread_n which_o be_v the_o lord_n other_o receive_v both_o together_o as_o it_o be_v by_o a_o certain_a conjunction_n of_o the_o thing_n with_o the_o sign_n as_o the_o faithful_a who_o take_v the_o supper_n worthy_o whether_o do_v the_o sacrament_n imprint_v any_o stamp_n or_o any_o spiritual_a work_n in_o soul_n and_o that_o such_o as_o can_v be_v blot_v out_o not_o of_o themselves_o or_o their_o own_o power_n nor_o yet_o by_o any_o supernatural_a virtue_n inherent_a in_o they_o not_o by_o a_o real_a and_o essential_a imprint_n of_o some_o sign_n as_o the_o print_n of_o a_o picture_n or_o sign_n be_v make_v in_o wax_n or_o money_n for_o the_o scripture_n allow_v none_o such_o but_o yet_o god_n do_v as_o it_o be_v mark_v out_o and_o seal_v up_o he_o sacramental_o &_o spiritual_o by_o they_o as_o instrument_n give_v the_o pledge_n of_o his_o spirit_n and_o the_o light_n of_o faith_n whereby_o they_o be_v make_v conformable_a to_o christ_n and_o discern_v from_o infidel_n and_o be_v mark_v out_o unto_o the_o profession_n of_o christ_n and_o this_o note_n in_o the_o purpose_n of_o god_n be_v such_o as_o can_v be_v blot_v out_o 2._o tim._n 2.19_o the_o foundation_n of_o god_n be_v sure_a have_v this_o seal_n the_o lord_n know_v who_o be_v he_o and_o 2._o cor._n 1.21_o he_o which_o have_v anoint_v we_o be_v god_n and_o who_o have_v seal_v we_o and_o give_v we_o the_o pledge_n of_o his_o spirit_n and_o ephe_n 1.13_o in_o who_o also_o you_o believe_v you_o be_v seal_v with_o the_o holy_a spirit_n of_o promise_n which_o be_v the_o earnest_n of_o the_o inheritance_n and_o chap._n 4.30_o do_v not_o you_o grieve_v the_o holy_a spirit_n of_o god_n by_o who_o you_o be_v seal_v and_o ezech._n 9.4_o the_o mark_n of_o the_o letter_n tau_n be_v say_v to_o be_v make_v in_o the_o forehead_n of_o those_o man_n which_o sigh_n and_o mourn_v and_o revel_v 7.3_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n be_v mark_v in_o their_o forehead_n as_o on_o the_o contrary_a the_o child_n of_o perdition_n be_v say_v to_o be_v mark_v with_o the_o mark_n of_o the_o beast_n revel_v 13.16.17_o to_o who_o do_v it_o belong_v to_o administer_v the_o sacrament_n to_o they_o only_o to_o who_o it_o be_v permit_v to_o exercise_v the_o office_n of_o preach_v the_o gospel_n according_a to_o that_o say_n go_v you_o forth_o &_o teach_v all_o nation_n baptise_v they_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n math._n 28.28_o and_o 1._o cor._n 4.1_o for_o the_o sacrament_n be_v the_o appurtenance_n of_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o the_o seal_n of_o god_n promise_n which_o can_v lawful_o be_v set_v too_o without_o the_o unfolding_n of_o this_o word_n of_o god_n for_o neiher_n can_v their_o be_v a_o accessory_a unless_o their_o be_v a_o principal_a and_o it_o belong_v to_o the_o same_o man_n as_o the_o chancellor_n use_v the_o king_n authority_n to_o write_v the_o table_n of_o the_o testament_n faithful_o and_o to_o seal_v they_o with_o his_o seal_n whence_o do_v the_o sacrament_n receive_v their_o power_n and_o excellency_n from_o the_o institution_n of_o god_n so_o that_o that_o form_n be_v observe_v which_o he_o have_v prescribe_v &_o that_o by_o a_o public_a person_n either_o right_o call_v or_o at_o the_o least_o by_o a_o common_a error_n use_v the_o public_a function_n and_o not_o of_o the_o manner_n merit_n and_o excellency_n of_o the_o person_n work_v &_o administer_a phil._n 1._o but_o whether_o do_v the_o minister_n to_o who_o be_v commit_v the_o lawful_a administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o be_v call_v god_n fellow-morkers_a deliver_v also_o with_o their_o hand_n the_o matter_n of_o the_o sacrament_n no_o but_o they_o do_v outward_o give_v the_o earthly_a sign_n and_o do_v only_o perform_v the_o outward_a duty_n and_o god_n do_v inward_o confer_v the_o heavenly_a gift_n represent_v by_o they_o &_o give_v increase_v because_o god_n alone_o do_v circumcise_v the_o heart_n 30_o heart_n deut._n 30_o and_o therefore_o this_o circumcision_n be_v say_v to_o be_v make_v without_o hand_n 11_o hand_n col_fw-fr 2_o 11_o and_o john_n the_o baptist_n confess_v that_o he_o indeed_o baptize_v they_o with_o water_n but_o the_o lord_n jesus_n do_v baptise_v they_o with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o with_o fire_n math._n 3.11_o and_o only_o the_o heavenly_a father_n give_v that_o bread_n which_o be_v indeed_o heavenly_a john_n 6.32_o otherwise_o sometime_o that_o be_v ascribe_v to_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n which_o belong_v to_o god_n alone_o for_o that_o be_v the_o nature_n of_o word_n which_o belong_v to_o one_o thing_n that_o that_o be_v attribute_v to_o the_o instrument_n which_o belong_v to_o the_o principal_a efficient_a cause_n where_o and_o when_o ought_v the_o sacrament_n to_o be_v admininistre_v in_o the_o assembly_n of_o the_o church_n and_o usual_o no_o where_o else_o to_o wit_n when_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v gather_v together_o or_o a_o great_a part_n thereof_o not_o out_o of_o the_o assembly_n of_o the_o church_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v the_o form_n and_o manner_n of_o administration_n that_o those_o sign_n shall_v be_v use_v without_o change_n which_o christ_n himself_o have_v prescribe_v and_o that_o the_o word_n of_o the_o institution_n than_o also_o of_o the_o lord_n promise_v be_v recite_v and_o explain_v not_o in_o a_o strange_a but_o in_o a_o know_a speech_n before_o the_o sacrament_n be_v administer_v and_o deluered_a 23_o deluered_a act_n 19.3_o 4.5_o 1_o cor._n 11_o 23_o for_o the_o apostle_n do_v express_o forbid_v 1._o cor._n 14.19_o to_o use_v a_o strange_a language_n in_o the_o church_n and_o such_o ceremony_n ought_v to_o be_v use_v which_o be_v not_o humane_a and_o receive_v but_o appoint_v and_o command_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n as_o also_o prayer_n and_o thanksgiving_n after_o the_o example_n of_o christ_n who_o command_v the_o church_n to_o do_v this_o do_v you_o this_o and_o act._n 22.16_o be_v thou_o baptize_v and_o be_v thou_o wash_v from_o thy_o sin_n in_o call_v upon_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n now_o the_o comeliness_n and_o dignity_n of_o the_o sacrament_n be_v to_o be_v esteem_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n also_o the_o multitude_n and_o pomp_n of_o humane_a rite_n do_v occupy_v the_o sense_n and_o the_o mind_n and_o do_v overturn_v the_o ceremony_n appoint_v by_o god_n to_o who_o be_v the_o sacrament_n to_o be_v administer_v the_o sacrament_n indeed_o be_v common_a to_o the_o godly_a and_o ungodly_a and_o also_o other_o outward_a thing_n in_o the_o church_n 27.29_o
otherwise_o preach_v the_o gospel_n than_o he_o &_o his_o apostle_n do_v 25_o do_v gal._n 1_o 9_o 1_o cor._n 11_o 25_o 2_o because_o it_o be_v a_o curse_a deed_n to_o add_v any_o thing_n to_o the_o testament_n of_o christ_n or_o to_o take_v away_o gal._n 3_o 15._o 3_o because_o more_o fruit_n do_v redound_v to_o the_o faithful_a by_o both_o sign_n then_o by_o one_o and_o two_o sign_n do_v signify_v more_o full_o &_o do_v more_o move_v the_o mind_n then_o one_o otherwise_o christ_n have_v add_v another_o sign_n to_o no_o purpose_n 4_o because_o chrysostom_n say_v it_o be_v not_o with_o we_o as_o in_o the_o old_a law_n where_o some_o part_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n be_v give_v to_o the_o priest_n &_o some_o go_v to_o the_o offerer_n 11_o hom._n 8._o upon_o 1_o cor._n 11_o but_o the_o same_o body_n of_o christ_n &_o the_o same_o cup_n be_v set_v forth_o to_o we_o al._n 5_o because_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o council_n to_o determine_v nothing_o against_o the_o word_n of_o god_n 6_o because_o although_o we_o be_v not_o bind_v to_o do_v always_o that_o which_o be_v command_v as_o when_o man_n can_v for_o want_v of_o opportunity_n be_v partaker_n either_o of_o baptism_n or_o the_o lord_n supper_n yet_o when_o we_o do_v it_o we_o must_v not_o depart_v from_o the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n 7_o because_o see_v that_o we_o be_v so_o free_a from_o a_o multitude_n of_o ceremony_n that_o we_o have_v a_o few_o easy_a and_o plain_a it_o be_v a_o intolerable_a thing_n if_o we_o will_v not_o perform_v they_o without_o corruption_n 8_o because_o the_o pascall_n lamb_n manna_n and_o the_o sacrifice_n be_v not_o figure_n of_o the_o supper_n but_o of_o christ_n and._n 1._o cor._n 10.3_o 4._o the_o israralite_n be_v say_v to_o eat_v the_o same_o spiritual_a meat_n and_o to_o drink_v the_o same_o spiritual_a drink_n 9_o because_o the_o keep_n of_o the_o bread_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n be_v superstitious_a and_o can_v be_v do_v more_o easy_o then_o of_o wine_n 10_o because_o the_o adversary_n themselves_o do_v grant_v that_o in_o old_a time_n bread_n be_v give_v into_o the_o hand_n but_o that_o the_o cup_n be_v wont_v with_o the_o deacon_n hand_n to_o be_v put_v to_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o communicant_o which_o will_v drink_v of_o it_o in_o the_o church_n and_o at_o that_o which_o they_o call_v corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la feast_n they_o sing_v thus_o dedit_fw-la fragilibus_fw-la corpo_fw-it ris_fw-mi ferculum_fw-la dedit_fw-la &_o testibus_fw-la salutis_fw-la poculum_fw-la dicens_fw-la accipite_fw-la quod_fw-la trado_fw-la vasculun_fw-la omnes_fw-la ex_fw-la eo_fw-la bibite_fw-la that_o be_v he_o give_v to_o the_o weak_a the_o dish_n of_o his_o body_n he_o give_v also_o to_o the_o sorrowful_a the_o cup_n of_o safety_n say_v take_v this_o small_a vessel_n which_o i_o give_v drink_v you_o alof_o it_o 11_o because_o godly_a conscience_n be_v not_o to_o be_v debar_v of_o the_o sweet_a promise_n which_o by_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v annex_v to_o partake_v of_o the_o cup._n 12_o because_o the_o cause_n be_v not_o take_v away_o for_o which_o christ_n ordain_v the_o use_n of_o the_o cup._n 13_o because_o paul_n wright_v to_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o the_o corinthian_n yea_o to_o all_o that_o call_v on_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o every_o place_n 1._o cor._n 1.2_o not_o only_o to_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n do_v command_v both_o kind_n to_o be_v give_v take_v eat_z drink_n neither_o be_v the_o word_n let_v he_o eat_v and_o drink_v less_o command_v then_o let_v he_o examine_v and_o true_o till_o the_o come_n of_o the_o lord_n chap._n 11_o 28._o 14_o because_o they_o be_v deceive_v which_o suppose_v that_o the_o lie_v man_n communion_n in_o time_n past_a signify_v the_o participation_n of_o one_o of_o the_o part_n only_o but_o the_o clergy_n of_o both_o for_o there_o also_o both_o kind_n be_v give_v but_o it_o be_v call_v a_o lay_a communion_n because_o the_o clerick_a minister_n put_v out_o of_o their_o office_n for_o some_o offence_n do_v not_o communicate_v any_o more_o among_o the_o clergy_n or_o among_o the_o minister_n but_o as_o mingle_v among_o the_o company_n of_o lay_a man_n 15_o because_o it_o be_v a_o new_a and_o late_o devise_v mingle_v of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o euchariste_n 16_o because_n when_o their_o be_v mention_v make_v of_o break_v of_o bread_n by_o a_o synecdoche_n the_o whole_a supper_n be_v understand_v otherwise_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o who_o office_n it_o be_v to_o break_v bread_n have_v use_v only_o one_o sign_n whether_o or_o no_o for_o the_o discommodity_n which_o gerson_n do_v reckon_v up_o as_o 1._o the_o liquor_n by_o some_o chance_n may_v be_v spill_v 2._o it_o can_v be_v carry_v about_o without_o danger_n 3._o in_o winter_n it_o soon_o wax_v sour_a 4._o kind_n in_o his_o book_n of_o the_o communion_n under_o kind_n in_o summer_n it_o purify_v and_o have_v worm_n 5._o it_o bring_v a_o loathe_n to_o they_o which_o drink_n 6._o in_o some_o country_n it_o be_v hardly_o get_v 7_o by_o this_o mean_n lay_v man_n touch_v the_o cup._n 8._o some_o of_o they_o have_v beard_n 9_o some_o be_v take_v with_o the_o palsy_n 10._o the_o dignity_n of_o the_o priest_n &_o of_o lay_v man_n be_v not_o alike_o be_v these_o cause_n weighty_a enough_o &_o just_a for_o which_o by_o good_a right_a one_o part_n of_o the_o sacrament_n can_v be_v take_v away_o from_o the_o laic_n in_o no_o wise_a because_o 1_o christ_n the_o apostle_n and_o the_o ancient_a church_n set_v not_o so_o much_o by_o these_o and_o the_o like_a thing_n foresee_v of_o they_o that_o therefore_o they_o suppose_v the_o holy_a supper_n in_o one_o part_n thereof_o shall_v be_v maim_v 2_o because_o it_o may_v happen_v also_o to_o the_o bread_n that_o it_o may_v fall_v upon_o the_o ground_n and_o be_v keep_v long_o may_v become_v musty_a yet_o it_o be_v not_o exclude_v true_o negligence_n in_o handle_v of_o mystery_n be_v to_o be_v take_v heed_n of_o but_o if_o by_o chance_n but_o one_o only_a piece_n of_o bread_n or_o drop_v of_o wine_n fall_v on_o the_o earth_n for_o want_v of_o circumspection_n it_o have_v not_o any_o more_o the_o form_n of_o a_o sacrament_n when_o it_o can_v be_v any_o more_o use_v 3_o because_o the_o keep_n of_o it_o against_o the_o time_n to_o come_v for_o the_o use_n of_o sick_a folk_n and_o the_o carry_v of_o it_o from_o place_n to_o place_n do_v spring_n from_o man_n superstition_n 4_o because_o it_o be_v a_o superstition_n not_o to_o permit_v unto_o lay_v man_n that_o they_o shall_v touch_v the_o cup_n with_o hand_n or_o with_o mouth_n who_o paul_n 1_o cor._n 6_o 11._o say_v to_o be_v wash_v and_o sanstify_v and_o iustify_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n and_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o our_o lord_n 5_o because_o that_o collection_n from_o particular_n be_v erroneous_a for_o neither_o if_o some_o do_v abhor_v wine_n and_o some_o nation_n do_v hardly_o get_v wine_n some_o also_o can_v hardly_o keep_v it_o be_v carry_v unto_o they_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o extreme_a cold_a be_v a_o law_n to_o be_v make_v which_o may_v prescribe_v to_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n a_o necessity_n of_o communicate_v in_o one_o kind_n but_o it_o be_v more_o tolerablie_o conclude_v that_o the_o abstemious_a may_v either_o abstain_v from_o the_o supper_n of_o the_o lord_n whereof_o nature_n have_v deprive_v they_o or_o if_o they_o be_v present_a that_o the_o offer_v it_o they_o be_v sufficient_a or_o that_o proportionable_a drink_n which_o man_n do_v familiar_o use_v be_v to_o be_v use_v in_o those_o place_n where_o wine_n can_v be_v have_v at_o all_o then_o to_o conclude_v upon_o gerson_n premise_n the_o denial_n of_o the_o cup_n 6_o because_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o beard_a which_o be_v in_o the_o ancient_a church_n the_o cup_n be_v not_o nor_o be_v not_o to_o be_v deny_v unto_o woman_n as_o it_o be_v in_o popery_n 7_o because_o christian_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v so_o delicate_a and_o if_o the_o pollution_n of_o some_o communicant_n be_v enormous_a and_o abominable_a or_o there_o be_v sear_n of_o some_o dangerous_a and_o infective_a sickness_n these_o may_v communicate_v either_o a_o part_n by_o themselves_o or_o in_o the_o last_o rank_n 8_o because_o in_o the_o palsy_n and_o those_o which_o be_v trouble_v with_o the_o shake_n of_o the_o head_n that_o wariness_n may_v be_v use_v that_o there_o may_v be_v no_o need_n of_o change_v of_o the_o institution_n of_o christ_n 9_o neither_o be_v the_o commandment_n of_o go_v to_o be_v make_v of_o none_o authority_n that_o the_o tradition_n of_o man_n may_v be_v keep_v math._n 15.6_o 10_o because_o the_o dignity_n of_o the_o minister_n be_v not_o place_v in_o
humane_a ordinance_n 1._o pet._n 2.13_o this_o he_o do_v not_o because_o man_n devise_v it_o for_o it_o be_v a_o excellent_a gift_n of_o god_n but_o because_o it_o be_v either_o proper_a to_o man_n or_o appoint_v for_o the_o good_a of_o man_n out_o of_o all_o this_o we_o may_v gather_v that_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n be_v god_n adversary_n in_o that_o he_o dare_v arrogate_v this_o to_o himself_o to_o translate_v king_n to_o set_v up_o and_o pull_v down_o who_o he_o will_n be_v it_o necessary_a to_o keep_v this_o particle_n in_o the_o definition_n of_o a_o magistrate_n that_o he_o be_v ordain_v of_o god_n it_o be_v 1._o first_o that_o by_o this_o we_o may_v acknowledge_v god_n the_o author_n thereof_o 2._o that_o we_o may_v obey_v this_o divine_a ordinance_n 3._o that_o the_o magistrate_n may_v know_v that_o in_o his_o faithful_a service_n to_o god_n he_o do_v that_o which_o please_v he_o 4._o that_o both_o magistrate_n and_o subject_n may_v receive_v comfort_n from_o this_o that_o god_n govern_v all_o the_o danger_n of_o this_o politic_a life_n but_o as_o for_o tyrant_n and_o rebel_n he_o will_v punish_v they_o may_v a_o christian_a man_n be_v lawful_o call_v by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o in_o a_o good_a conscience_n become_v a_o magistrate_n sure_o he_o may_v 1._o because_o magistracy_n be_v the_o good_a ordinance_n and_o disposition_n of_o god_n 13_o god_n rom._n 13.1_o 1_o pet_n 2_o 13_o 2._o because_o the_o gospel_n do_v not_o abrogate_v policy_n &_o politic_a administration_n no_o more_o than_o it_o do_v physic_n or_o architecture_n the_o science_n of_o building_n only_o it_o proclaim_v spiritual_a righteousness_n which_o be_v by_o faith_n in_o christ_n 3_o because_o the_o magistrate_n be_v command_v to_o serve_v the_o lord_n in_o fear_n and_o to_o kiss_v the_o son_n of_o god_n 2.11_o god_n ps_n 2.11_o that_o be_v by_o this_o symbolical_a note_n of_o subjection_n to_o acknowledge_v and_o profess_v christ_n his_o lord_n now_o this_o no_o man_n can_v better_o do_v then_o a_o true_a christian_a who_o above_o other_o be_v endue_v with_o the_o knowledge_n faith_n and_o fear_v of_o god_n 4._o god_n command_v prayer_n to_o be_v make_v for_o the_o magistrate_n jerem._n 29.7_o pray_v for_o the_o kingdom_n of_o babylon_n for_o in_o the_o peace_n thereof_o shall_v be_v your_o peace_n thus_o abraham_n pray_v for_o king_n abimeleck_n 20.17_o abimeleck_n gen._n 20.17_o &_o jacob_n bless_v the_o king_n of_o egypt_n 47.10_o egypt_n gen._n 47.10_o &_o 1_o tim._n 2.1_o i_o exhort_v you_o say_v paul_n that_o prayer_n and_o supplication_n and_o thankesgiving_n be_v make_v for_o all_o man_n for_o king_n and_o such_o as_o be_v set_v in_o authority_n yet_o the_o magistrate_n of_o those_o time_n be_v infidel_n it_o follow_v therefore_o necessary_o that_o magistracy_n be_v both_o a_o good_a thing_n and_o acceptable_a to_o god_n for_o we_o must_v not_o pray_v for_o the_o establish_n of_o that_o which_o be_v evil_a 5_o we_o have_v also_o example_n of_o such_o as_o bare_a rule_n and_o yet_o be_v christ_n most_o faithful_a disciple_n such_o be_v joseph_n of_o arimathea_n nicodemus_n sergius_n paulus_n erastus_n and_o many_o other_o and_o such_o we_o read_v that_o the_o centurion_n be_v 16.25_o be_v mar._n 15.9_o joh._n 3.1_o act_n 13_o 7_o 12_o rom._n 16.25_o that_o i_o may_v say_v nothing_o of_o those_o most_o holy_a emperor_n constantine_n theodosius_n and_o other_o who_o defend_v the_o church_n both_o by_o public_a authority_n and_o victorious_a arm_n be_v think_v you_o power_n and_o authority_n from_o the_o devil_n because_o he_o be_v call_v the_o prince_n of_o the_o world_n john_n 12.31_o &_o 16.11_o and_o because_o he_o say_v math._n 4.8.9_o that_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o earth_n be_v in_o his_o power_n and_o he_o can_v give_v they_o to_o who_o he_o will_v in_o no_o sort_n for_o he_o be_v not_o call_v a_o prince_n by_o right_n absolute_o &_o simple_o but_o in_o that_o he_o be_v so_o by_o treachery_n malice_n usurpation_n abusion_n and_o relation_n to_o those_o who_o be_v subject_n unto_o he_o as_o for_o his_o speech_n to_o christ_n he_o belie_v his_o authority_n and_o therein_o show_v himself_o a_o lie_a spirit_n for_o he_o can_v give_v kingdom_n to_o who_o he_o will_n but_o do_v not_o this_o make_v as_o though_o god_n allow_v not_o the_o authority_n of_o prince_n because_o he_o be_v displease_v with_o his_o people_n for_o make_v a_o king_n in_o israel_n 1_o sam._n 8.6.7_o no_o but_o he_o rather_o dislike_v 1._o the_o diffidence_n of_o the_o people_n who_o rely_v more_o upon_o man_n than_o god_n 2._o their_o boldness_n in_o erect_v a_o new_a form_n of_o government_n 3._o the_o contempt_n of_o god_n government_n in_o that_o contemn_v god_n their_o king_n they_o seek_v a_o certain_a king_n after_o the_o example_n of_o other_o nation_n 4._o their_o tedious_a weariness_n both_o of_o faith_n and_o hope_n whereby_o they_o be_v bind_v to_o depend_v upon_o god_n and_o expect_v judge_n at_o his_o alone_a pleasure_n for_o the_o israelite_n from_o moses_n to_o samuel_n have_v judge_n who_o sometime_o of_o one_o and_o sometime_o of_o another_o tribe_n be_v set_v over_o they_o for_o the_o most_o part_n by_o the_o extraordinary_a hand_n of_o god_n therefore_o god_n in_o his_o wrath_n say_v unto_o samuel_n harken_v unto_o the_o voice_n of_o this_o people_n for_o they_o have_v not_o only_o despise_v thou_o but_o i_o that_o i_o shall_v not_o reign_v over_o they_o 1._o sam._n 8.7_o and_o in_o osea_n the_o 13.11_o say_v the_o lord_n i_o have_v give_v thou_o a_o king_n in_o my_o wrath_n and_o take_v he_o away_o in_o my_o indignation_n but_o since_o many_o bad_a man_n yea_o tyrant_n be_v magistrate_n and_o in_o government_n much_o injustice_n be_v commit_v in_o judgement_n be_v many_o deceit_n can_v we_o say_v that_o even_o their_o office_n be_v of_o god_n 1._o sure_o they_o be_v because_o they_o be_v the_o good_a ordinance_n of_o god_n rom._n 13.1_o as_o for_o these_o abuse_n and_o corruption_n they_o be_v in_o the_o person_n who_o take_v upon_o they_o the_o office_n of_o magistrate_n neither_o be_v these_o from_o god_n but_o have_v another_o beginning_n as_o from_o the_o devil_n and_o from_o both_o the_o malice_n and_o weakness_n of_o man_n we_o must_v therefore_o distinguish_v betwixt_o the_o office_n and_o bad_a person_n which_o be_v in_o office_n for_o this_o be_v a_o fallation_n of_o the_o accident_n when_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o corruption_n of_o some_o governor_n &_o manifold_a confusion_n in_o man_n life_n the_o politic_a government_n itself_o be_v condemn_v 2._o neither_o must_v we_o look_v only_o what_o evil_n be_v in_o government_n but_o what_o good_a be_v in_o it_o the_o good_a we_o must_v commend_v as_o the_o consociation_n of_o mankind_n marriage_n and_o in_o it_o the_o procreation_n and_o education_n of_o child_n contract_n distinction_n of_o lordship_n judgement_n punishment_n of_o the_o wicked_a defence_n of_o the_o good_a nursery_n to_o school_n and_o church_n and_o such_o like_a but_o as_o for_o the_o evil_n in_o government_n we_o must_v wise_o cover_v they_o and_o by_o the_o consideration_n of_o our_o good_a not_o so_o much_o as_o name_v they_o 3._o to_o conclude_v corruption_n in_o government_n be_v oftentimes_o punishment_n and_o as_o it_o be_v prison_n whereby_o god_n do_v punish_v the_o sin_n of_o man_n as_o it_o be_v say_v ecclesiasticus_fw-la 10.8_o because_o of_o the_o unrighteous_a deal_n and_o wrong_v and_o riches_n get_v by_o deceit_n the_o kingdom_n be_v translate_v from_o one_o people_n to_o another_o and_o this_o say_n be_v often_o true_a quicquid_fw-la delirant_fw-la reges_fw-la plectuntur_fw-la achini_fw-la let_v grecian_a prince_n do_v amiss_o the_o grecian_a subject_n punish_v be_v do_v not_o the_o gospel_n utter_o abolish_v politic_a order_n in_o prohibit_v revenge_n no_o for_o revenge_n be_v twofold_a one_o ordinate_a or_o public_a which_o be_v do_v by_o the_o magistrate_n in_o a_o certain_a order_n by_o certain_a law_n to_o a_o good_a end_n without_o hatred_n to_o the_o person_n which_o the_o gospel_n forbid_v not_o nay_o it_o be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o magistrate_n office_n whereupon_o paul_n rom._n 13.4_o do_v express_o call_v the_o magistrate_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o avenger_n of_o he_o that_o do_v evil_a and_o it_o be_v most_o agreeable_a to_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n and_o consonant_a to_o that_o deut._n 32.35_o vengeance_n be_v i_o and_o i_o will_v repay_v it_o for_o god_n the_o just_a judge_n do_v punish_v sin_n either_o without_o man_n help_n as_o in_o the_o destruction_n of_o sodom_n or_o by_o ordinary_a punishment_n which_o he_o have_v commit_v to_o magistrate_n 2._o the_o second_o be_v inordinate_a proceed_v from_o a_o evil_a affection_n tend_v to_o the_o hurt_n or_o overthrow_v of_o he_o of_o who_o we_o seek_v
it_o 6_o it_o 1_o sam._n 24_o 6_o what_o will_v he_o have_v be_v if_o he_o have_v shed_v his_o blood_n yea_o when_o one_o bring_v he_o word_n that_o he_o have_v slay_v he_o do_v he_o not_o command_v he_o to_o be_v execute_v as_o a_o traitor_n 15_o traitor_n 2_o sam._n 1.14_o 15_o and_o this_o he_o do_v that_o he_o may_v not_o make_v himself_o a_o precedent_n for_o traitor_n by_o a_o discontent_a spirit_n through_o his_o example_n to_o kill_v king_n nay_o he_o think_v it_o better_o to_o make_v a_o dear_a account_n of_o his_o sovereign_n life_n though_o he_o seek_v he_o tertullian_n have_v to_o this_o purpose_n a_o excellent_a speech_n christianis_fw-la praestat_fw-la occidi_fw-la quam_fw-la occidere_fw-la it_o be_v better_a for_o christian_n to_o be_v kill_v then_o to_o kill_v this_o make_v paul_n to_o say_v let_v every_o soul_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o high_a power_n 13.1_o power_n rom._n 13.1_o this_o make_v he_o to_o exhort_v that_o prayer_n and_o supplication_n be_v make_v for_o king_n 2.1_o king_n 1_o tim._n 2.1_o even_o for_o such_o king_n as_o nero_n be_v in_o his_o time_n this_o make_v peter_n to_o say_v fear_v god_n honour_v the_o king_n 17_o king_n 1._o pet_n 2_o 17_o this_o make_v solomon_n to_o say_v my_o son_n fear_n god_n and_o the_o king_n and_o meddle_v not_o with_o they_o that_o be_v seditious_a 21_o 1_o prov._n 24_o 21_o and_o to_o advise_v all_o man_n in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o preacher_n not_o so_o much_o as_o to_o curse_v the_o king_n in_o their_o heart_n 10.20_o heart_n eccle._n 10.20_o but_o see_v you_o set_v down_o this_o true_a doctrine_n of_o obedience_n tell_v i_o whether_o this_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o popery_n a●scorse_n the_o answer_v be_v ●n_a abridgement_n of_o the_o ex●ct_a a●scorse_n that_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o any_o man_n to_o kill_v a_o prince_n who_o be_v of_o a_o contrary_a religion_n to_o popery_n questionless_a it_o be_v as_o may_v be_v prove_v first_o by_o their_o own_o assertion_n second_o by_o their_o several_a practice_n three_o by_o the_o pope_n own_o pardon_n for_o and_o commendation_n of_o such_o seditious_a person_n as_o have_v either_o attempt_v or_o achieve_v the_o like_a treason_n what_o be_v the_o assertion_n of_o papist_n in_o this_o point_n they_o do_v not_o only_o say_v that_o heretic_n neighbour_n may_v be_v spoil_v lawful_o of_o their_o good_n glossa_fw-la decret_a papa_n ●pud_fw-la great_a c._n 15._o q._n glossa_fw-la that_o protestant_n minister_n may_v be_v defraud_v of_o their_o tithe_n personus_fw-la tithe_n a●●●_n us_o card._n et_fw-la personus_fw-la that_o heretic_n creditor_n be_v not_o to_o be_v pay_v quib_n pay_v symanchalnst_a cath_z tit._n 46._o toletus_n jos_n insti_n sacerd_v de_fw-fr excom_n gratia_fw-la c._n 15_o quib_n that_o keeper_n of_o fort_n be_v free_v from_o such_o lord_n sym_n lord_n ibidem_fw-la sym_n that_o wife_n be_v not_o bind_v to_o such_o husband_n instit_fw-la husband_n sym_n instit_fw-la that_o father_n may_v disinherit_v such_o child_n alanus_fw-la child_n alanus_fw-la that_o child_n may_v deny_v such_o parent_n pars_fw-la parent_n alanus_n pars_fw-la that_o kinsfolk_n may_v kill_v such_o kindred_n legi_fw-la kindred_n grat._n l_o 5_o causa_fw-la 13.9_o cap_n legi_fw-la and_o that_o one_o bear_v in_o a_o heretical_a country_n may_v deny_v his_o country_n pars_fw-la country_n alan_n pars_fw-la but_o that_o by_o heresy_n a_o man_n nay_o a_o king_n be_v deprive_v of_o all_o his_o jurisdiction_n whether_o natural_a civil_a or_o politic_a 47_o politic_a sym._n i●stit_fw-la tit_n 46._o sect_n 47_o and_o the_o tenor_n of_o the_o oath_n of_o the_o league_n in_o france_n be_v thus_o if_o ever_o i_o make_v marriage_n use_v traffic_n yield_v aid_n hold_v friendship_n give_v credence_n to_o heretic_n or_o once_o salute_v they_o let_v god_n confound_v i_o ●9_n i_o ludou_n de_fw-fr orl._n part._n ●9_n show_v this_o in_o particular_a one_o of_o their_o own_o bishop_n say_v as_o soon_o as_o a_o christian_a king_n become_v heretical_a forthwith_o the_o people_n be_v free_v from_o subjection_n 11_o subjection_n sim●ncha_n inst_z tit._n 23_o sect_n 11_o a_o cardinal_n say_v as_o long_o as_o the_o prince_n continue_v excommunicate_a as_o he_o must_v do_v ever_o if_o he_o be_v not_o a_o romanist_n for_o the_o pope_n excommunicate_v ipso_fw-la facto_fw-la all_o heretic_n the_o subject_n be_v free_v from_o the_o oath_n of_o subjection_n 13_o subjection_n tol._n instr._n sa●erd_n l_o 1._o c._n 13_o but_o by_o who_o by_o the_o pope_n say_v a_o jesuite_n who_o upon_o just_a cause_n have_v power_n to_o absolve_v from_o oath_n both_o himself_o as_o gregory_n the_o 12._o do_v when_o he_o swear_v that_o if_o he_o be_v choose_v pope_n he_o will_v give_v it_o over_o and_o all_o other_o 15_o other_o ar_n or_o je_n mar_v c._n 15_o if_o he_o be_v personal_o excommunicate_a then_o say_v their_o lawyer_n subject_n be_v free_v from_o their_o allegiance_n and_o all_o his_o heretical_a assistant_n be_v to_o be_v root_v out_o and_o their_o land_n to_o be_v expose_v to_o be_v possess_v of_o stranger_n catholic_n 676_o catholic_n massov_fw-mi juriscon_n de_fw-mi may_v 〈◊〉_d ●●eccl_n par_fw-fr 2_o l_o 4._o the_o imp_n pag_n 676_o nay_o say_v another_o lawyer_n if_o he_o be_v not_o excommunicate_a yet_o if_o his_o heresy_n be_v public_o know_v hom_n know_v panorm_a cap_fw-es cum_fw-la in_o hom_n there_o need_v no_o pronunciation_n of_o the_o sentence_n of_o excommunication_n so_o that_o say_v the_o jesuite_n subject_n may_v lawful_o deny_v he_o obedience_n ●63_n obedience_n valent._n je_n tom_fw-mi 3_o in_o thomae_fw-la d_o s●_n q._n 12_o p._n 2._o p●g_n ●63_n how_o so_o for_o the_o evidence_n of_o the_o crime_n say_v their_o whole_a school_n &_o make_v it_o a_o matter_n of_o certainty_n &_o faith_n do_v infer_v a_o sentence_n of_o condenation_n 2_o condenation_n bannes_n ●n_n 2._o 2_o q._n 12._o act_n 2_o concl_n 2_o because_o as_o the_o more_o common_a opinion_n do_v define_v it_o there_o must_v we_o understand_v the_o pope_n will_n to_o have_v he_o excommunicate_v who_o upon_o the_o knowledge_n of_o his_o fault_n he_o will_v excommunicate_v nay_o suppose_v that_o a_o protestant_a prince_n have_v a_o just_a quarrel_n yet_o no_o war_n can_v be_v lawful_o denounce_v or_o wage_v by_o the_o queen_n be_v excommunicate_a by_o name_n though_o otherwise_o in_o itself_o it_o be_v most_o just_a because_o her_o power_n be_v unlawful_a ●●●ley_n unlawful_a alens_fw-la letter_n to_o ●●●ley_n come_v we_o next_o to_o practice_n show_v i_o they_o first_o pope_n gregory_n the_o seven_o alias_o hildebrand_n begin_v this_o pageant_n we_o by_o the_o apostolical_a authority_n do_v absolve_v all_o from_o their_o oath_n which_o they_o have_v give_v to_o person_n excommunicate_v 6_o excommunicate_v apud_fw-la great_a c._n 17._o 6._o 6_o and_o another_o gregory_n use_v the_o like_a tenor_n we_o excommunicate_v all_o heretic_n that_o they_o who_o be_v bind_v unto_o they_o by_o oath_n may_v know_v that_o they_o be_v absolve_v from_o all_o duty_n of_o fidelity_n 5_o fidelity_n greg_n 9_o l._n 9_o decr_n tit_n 7._o c._n 5_o last_o pius_fw-la quintus_fw-la their_o successor_n in_o place_n but_o superior_a in_o malice_n say_v we_o command_v all_o subject_n &_o absolve_v they_o from_o the_o faith_n they_o have_v plight_n with_o their_o queen_n elizabeth_n bulla_fw-la elizabeth_n pius_fw-la 5_o in_fw-la bulla_fw-la but_o this_o be_v only_o for_o obedience_n to_o king_n what_o can_v you_o show_v for_o offer_v violence_n to_o king_n costerus_n say_v this_o power_n of_o depose_v king_n of_o their_o crown_n and_o emperor_n of_o their_o dignity_n in_o behalf_n of_o the_o good_a of_o the_o church_n be_v ever_o peculiar_a to_o the_o pope_n who_o have_v no_o less_o authority_n as_o christ_n vicar_n over_o christian_n than_o the_o hireling_n over_o his_o beast_n 64_o beast_n in_o apol_n pro_fw-la part_n 1._o ench_n p._n 64_o so_o the_o pope_n have_v authority_n over_o the_o emperor_n say_v molinia_n because_o the_o emperor_n be_v but_o the_o pope_n minister_n and_o be_v to_o use_v his_o temporal_a sword_n only_o at_o his_o beck_n 2_o beck_n de_fw-fr inst_z disp●_n 29_o tract_n 2_o and_o if_o king_n will_v not_o enthrall_v themselves_o to_o the_o pope_n authority_n it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o christian_n say_v the_o cardinal_n to_o tolerate_v any_o such_o king_n who_o draw_v his_o subject_n to_o heresy_n p_o heresy_n bellarm._n l_o 5._o c_o 6_o 7_o 4._o de_fw-fr ro_n p_o but_o subject_n ought_v say_v sanders_n to_o set_v up_o another_o in_o his_o place_n 4_o place_n de_fw-fr visib_n monarch_n l_o 2_o c._n 4_o yea_o they_o ought_v say_v creswell_n to_o expel_v he_o out_o of_o his_o kingdom_n as_o the_o enemy_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v as_o he_o call_v it_o 194_o it_o in_o philop_n pag._n 194_o a_o undoubted_a doctrine_n among_o the_o learned_a and_o agreeable_a to_o apostolical_a truth_n yea_o which_o be_v
esteem_v it_o as_o a_o doctrine_n of_o man_n not_o of_o god_n as_o a_o private_a conceit_n not_o a_o public_a assertion_n we_o have_v no_o such_o doctrine_n neither_o have_v the_o church_n of_o god_n as_o for_o the_o truth_n of_o this_o in_o practice_n look_v we_o but_o to_o the_o day_n of_o queen_n mary_n when_o more_o suffer_v for_o religion_n in_o 5._o year_n then_o have_v do_v for_o treason_n in_o 45._o since_o do_v any_o they_o rebel_n against_o the_o life_n of_o that_o queen_n do_v they_o not_o suffer_v the_o loss_n of_o good_n liberty_n country_n land_n and_o life_n &_o pray_v rather_o that_o their_o sovereigns_n eye_n may_v be_v open_v they_o her_o year_n diminish_v and_o though_o diverse_a among_o we_o who_o can_v conform_v themselves_o be_v by_o the_o sentence_n of_o our_o consistory_n deprive_v of_o their_o live_n do_v any_o of_o they_o lay_v hand_n upon_o the_o lord_n anoint_v &_o do_v not_o the_o protestant_n in_o france_n the_o like_a at_o this_o time_n and_o sure_o if_o we_o well_o consider_v among_o many_o argument_n to_o persuade_v the_o truth_n of_o our_o religion_n &_o the_o falsity_n of_o popery_n this_o be_v not_o the_o least_o that_o our_o religion_n without_o equivocation_n be_v a_o obedient_a merciful_a &_o compassionate_a religion_n though_o our_o adversary_n prefer_v turk_n before_o we_o they_o be_v a_o cruel_a merciless_a &_o bloody_a religion_n burn_v all_o such_o as_o deny_v their_o breaden_a god_n &_o murder_v such_o governor_n as_o do_v but_o favour_n of_o our_o true_a catholic_a &_o christian_a faith_n as_o for_o this_o auctor_fw-la because_o the_o auctor_fw-la of_o the_o protestant_n apology_n for_o catholic_n may_v bring_v he_o in_o a_o enemy_n to_o magistracy_n i_o wish_v in_o some_o point_n he_o have_v write_v more_o spare_o he_o say_v if_o a_o governor_n come_v upon_o a_o subject_a to_o spoil_v he_o and_o kill_v he_o by_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n he_o may_v defend_v himself_o we_o say_v with_o tertullian_n it_o be_v better_a to_o be_v kill_v then_o to_o kill_v and_o to_o answer_v they_o defence_n and_o offence_n be_v not_o a_o like_a he_o say_v david_n may_v have_v kill_v saul_n we_o lay_v with_o david_n god_n forbid_v i_o shall_v lay_v hand_n upon_o the_o lord_n anoint_v and_o david_n be_v anoint_v king_n have_v another_o gate_n warrant_v than_o they_o can_v show_v he_o say_v in_o public_a and_o notorious_a tyranny_n subject_n may_v crave_v aid_n from_o foreign_a prince_n we_o say_v bless_a be_v they_o that_o suffer_v and_o bless_v be_v god_n our_o governor_n be_v such_o as_o we_o need_v not_o to_o seek_v aid_n against_o they_o he_o say_v the_o heluetian_o do_v well_o in_o shake_v of_o the_o yoke_n of_o austria_n we_o say_v a_o particular_a be_v no_o general_a rule_n he_o say_v that_o the_o jew_n do_v well_o to_o rise_v against_o antiochus_n we_o say_v the_o fact_n be_v extraordinary_a in_o a_o word_n there_o be_v nothing_o in_o he_o nor_o i_o hope_v in_o any_o protestant_a writer_n which_o will_v warrant_v conspiracy_n against_o prince_n which_o doctrine_n be_v devise_v by_o the_o devil_n nource_v by_o the_o pope_n learn_v in_o seminary_n practise_v more_o of_o late_a by_o jesuite_n than_o ever_o it_o be_v before_o &_o write_v as_o dracoes_n law_n by_o the_o favour_n of_o god_n in_o their_o own_o blood_n and_o if_o we_o read_v diligent_o this_o common_a place_n of_o magistracy_n we_o shall_v see_v that_o the_o author_n be_v no_o enemy_n to_o government_n who_o doubtless_o think_v that_o the_o king_n be_v to_o be_v honour_v as_o a_o second_o from_o god_n &_o only_o inferior_a to_o god_n alone_o as_o tertullian_n say_v you_o have_v add_v to_o your_o author_n 8._o question_n &_o answer_n return_v again_o unto_o he_o what_o be_v the_o general_a end_n of_o politic_a admistration_n and_o magistracy_n or_o magistrate_n public_a peace_n the_o preservation_n of_o piety_n and_o religion_n or_o that_o right_a &_o lawful_a worship_n of_o god_n unto_o which_o two_o head_n we_o may_v refer_v all_o law_n civil_a for_o hence_o come_v vengeance_n to_o the_o bad_a defence_n of_o the_o good_a safeguard_n of_o good_n reward_n of_o virtue_n discipline_n of_o manner_n execution_n of_o malefactor_n and_o robber_n and_o in_o a_o word_n the_o safety_n of_o man_n life_n to_o conclude_v by_o this_o mean_v the_o eutaxie_n &_o good_a order_n of_o all_o thing_n yea_o of_o religion_n itself_o be_v preserve_v or_o as_o agapetus_n write_v to_o justinian_n by_o this_o all_o man_n be_v assemble_v together_o &_o instruct_v in_o god_n word_n may_v unfeigned_o adore_v safe_o keep_v &_o without_o fear_n practice_v his_o upright_a righteousness_n to_o which_o purpose_n stigelius_n have_v these_o two_o golden_a verse_n utque_fw-la alios_fw-la alij_fw-la de_fw-la relligione_fw-la docerent_fw-la contiguas_fw-la pietas_fw-la iussit_fw-la habere_fw-la domos_fw-la that_o one_o may_v teach_v a_o other_o piety_n god_n house_v join_v with_o contiguitie_n to_o this_o end_n paul_n say_v pray_v you_o for_o king_n and_o for_o all_o set_v in_o authority_n i_o say_v set_v in_o authority_n that_o under_o they_o we_o may_v live_v a_o quiet_a and_o peaceable_a life_n in_o all_o godliness_n and_o honesty_n what_o use_v make_v you_o of_o this_o doctrine_n of_o mgistracy_n sure_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o magistrate_n 1._o that_o they_o labour_v to_o recognize_v their_o dignity_n use_v it_o with_o good_a conscience_n &_o that_o they_o maintain_v &_o adorn_v it_o with_o the_o great_a piety_n to_o god_n integrity_n of_o life_n equity_n towards_o man_n care_v of_o their_o charge_n &_o diligence_n in_o their_o call_n that_o possible_o they_o can_v etc._n deut._n 1.16_o 2_o cron._n 19_o 6_o 7._o etc._n etc._n 2._o that_o they_o may_v comfort_v themselves_o and_o hope_v of_o god_n aid_n be_v indeed_o in_o a_o most_o troublesome_a but_o yet_o a_o most_o holy_a call_n in_o that_o they_o be_v god_n ambassador_n or_o viceroy_n upon_o earth_n yea_o that_o they_o may_v know_v that_o god_n care_v for_o they_o according_a to_o that_o of_o the_o psalmist_n i_o will_v sing_v unto_o thou_o o_o lord_n a_o new_a song_n who_o give_v salvation_n to_o king_n but_o in_o regard_n of_o subject_n that_o they_o with_o thanks_o to_o god_n acknowledge_v so_o great_a a_o benefit_n &_o with_o good_a conscience_n submit_v themselves_o to_o god_n ordinance_n give_a caesar_n to_o caesar_n tribute_n to_o who_o tribute_n &_o pray_v for_o the_o life_n of_o their_o governor_n &_o maintain_v it_o by_o the_o hazard_n of_o their_o own_o both_o life_n &_o livelihood_n if_o need_v require_v what_o now_o be_v contrary_a to_o this_o doctrine_n of_o magistracy_n 1_o the_o heresy_n of_o the_o donatist_n who_o take_v away_o the_o authority_n of_o magistrate_n &_o in_o hatred_n to_o this_o order_n do_v reckon_v up_o many_o persecution_n which_o some_o magistrate_n have_v make_v against_o the_o church_n of_o god_n 2._o the_o error_n of_o the_o anabaptist_n &_o libertine_n who_o be_v so_o call_v because_o they_o seek_v liberty_n in_o outward_a thing_n &_o for_o which_o in_o the_o memory_n of_o our_o forefather_n they_o move_v the_o common_a people_n to_o take_v arm_n against_o their_o governor_n these_o deny_v i._o that_o magistracy_n be_v to_o be_v exercise_v among_o ●hose_v christian_n &_o spiritual_a people_n who_o the_o truth_n to_o wit_n christ_n have_v make_v free_a 8.32_o free_a joh_n 8.32_o 2._o they_o admit_v of_o no_o suit_n in_o law_n seat_n or_o sentence_n of_o justice_n or_o any_o defence_n of_o a_o man_n self_n whereas_o the_o internal_a liberty_n of_o conscience_n which_o god_n by_o his_o spirit_n work_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o his_o elect_a take_v not_o away_o the_o subjection_n of_o the_o outward_a man_n due_a to_o governor_n 21_o governor_n gal_n 5_o 1_o 2_o cor_n 7_o 21_o 3._o they_o be_v of_o opinion_n that_o god_n will_v not_o have_v christian_n at_o all_o to_o become_v soldier_n in_o war_n because_o paul_n say_v speak_v of_o spiritual_a not_o corporal_a warfare_n 2._o cor._n 10.7_o the_o weapon_n of_o our_o warfare_n be_v not_o carnal_a but_o spiritual_a but_o paul_n speak_v not_o here_o of_o politic_a magistrate_n but_o of_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n arm_v on_o all_o side_n with_o the_o word_n of_o truth_n the_o weapon_n of_o righteousness_n 2._o cor._n 6.7.4_o they_o speak_v evil_a of_o such_o as_o be_v in_o authority_n 8._o authority_n jude_n 8._o 3_o the_o seditious_a rebellion_n of_o the_o pope_n &_o all_o his_o papal_a clergy_n who_o upon_o certain_a forge_a immunity_n presume_v to_o take_v the_o sword_n of_o authority_n out_o of_o the_o magistrate_n hand_n and_o to_o make_v all_o prince_n vassal_n to_o they_o yet_o peter_n himself_o who_o successor_n they_o will_v be_v command_v bishop_n in_o plain_a term_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v lord_n over_o god_n inheritance_n 3_o inheritance_n 1._o pet._n 5_o 3_o yea_o bid_v all_o man_n to_o honour_v the_o king_n 2.17_o king_n 1._o pet._n 2.17_o but_o say_v a_o papist_n persona_fw-la praecipientis_fw-la non_fw-la continetur_fw-la in_o persona_fw-la loquentis_fw-la peter_n command_v this_o in_o his_o own_o person_n therefore_o be_v not_o bind_v to_o it_o in_o his_o own_o person_n well_o then_o peter_n say_v before_o fear_v god_n be_v he_o by_o this_o commandment_n exclude_v from_o god_n fear_n it_o seem_v sure_o his_o successor_n be_v who_o because_o they_o will_v not_o honour_v governor_n show_v to_o the_o world_n that_o they_o fear_v not_o god_n for_o he_o that_o fear_v the_o king_n of_o king_n will_v honour_v and_o obey_v his_o vicegerent_n and_o ambassador_n 3_o the_o flattery_n of_o such_o as_o so_o either_o extol_v the_o power_n of_o prince_n that_o they_o derogate_v from_o god_n power_n or_o deny_v that_o prince_n in_o cause_n both_o ecclesiastical_a &_o civil_a have_v supreme_a authority_n &_o headship_n over_o subject_n where_o as_o the_o prince_n of_o israel_n be_v often_o in_o the_o scripture_n call_v head_n of_o the_o people_n not_o as_o the_o pope_n will_v be_v to_o give_v life_n to_o the_o church_n for_o so_o only_o be_v christ_n the_o head_n but_o to_o command_v &_o direct_v that_o people_n over_o who_o it_o please_v god_n to_o place_n king_n in_o suprem_fw-la authority_n 4_o all_o such_o manner_n rite_n edict_n &_o consultation_n which_o be_v not_o agreeable_a to_o that_o eternal_a rule_n of_o honour_v god_n and_o love_v our_o neighbour_n permit_v theft_n robbery_n unbridled_a and_o promiscuous_a lust_n or_o any_o other_o monster_n of_o the_o like_a nature_n 5_o seditious_a commotion_n of_o turbulent_a rebel_n against_o their_o magistrate_n 6_o anarchy_n or_o want_v of_o governor_n which_o be_v worse_o than_o either_o the_o excess_n or_o defect_n of_o any_o magistrate_n 21.25_o magistrate_n judge_n 17_o 6_o 〈◊〉_d 21.25_o 〈◊〉_d make_v chrysostome_n in_o his_o sermon_n to_o the_o people_n of_o antioch_n to_o say_v it_o be_v better_a to_o have_v a_o tyrant_n king_n than_o no_o king_n and_o cornelius_n tacitus_n to_o say_v in_o the_o first_o book_n of_o his_o history_n it_o be_v better_a to_o live_v under_o a_o bad_a prince_n than_o under_o none_o laus_fw-la christo_fw-la nescia_fw-la finis_fw-la 1._o pet._n 2.17_o fear_v god_n honour_v the_o king_n to_o fear_v god_n be_v the_o begin_n of_o this_o book_n to_o honour_v the_o king_n be_v the_o end_n of_o it_o finis_fw-la
compulsion_n nor_o by_o this_o necessity_n proceed_v from_o god_n but_o from_o the_o voluntary_a corruption_n of_o man_n for_o no_o man_n be_v a_o offence_n to_o another_o against_o his_o will_n or_o through_o inconsideration_n but_o of_o purpose_n with_o deliberation_n therefore_o though_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o offence_n come_v yet_o woe_n unto_o the_o world_n because_o of_o offence_n what_o be_v the_o joint_a cause_n or_o by_o how_o many_o mean_n be_v a_o offence_n give_v four_o first_o by_o false_a doctrine_n and_o false_a worship_n such_o be_v heresy_n error_n worship_v of_o idol_n superstition_n the_o tradition_n of_o man_n whereby_o the_o weak_a be_v withdraw_v from_o the_o simplicity_n of_o the_o word_n 2_o by_o word_n or_o speech_n and_o that_o either_o filthy_a curse_a or_o blasphemous_a 3_o by_o life_n and_o behaviour_n repugnant_a to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n such_o be_v filthy_a gesture_n heinous_a offence_n and_o evil_a example_n in_o the_o abuse_n of_o christian_a liberty_n whereby_o the_o weak_a be_v discourage_v from_o christianity_n but_o for_o the_o most_o part_n the_o offence_n give_v by_o doctrine_n do_v more_o harm_n than_o the_o offence_n by_o manner_n because_o they_o work_v more_o close_o &_o present_o assault_v the_o faith_n but_o these_o other_o do_v soon_o appear_v and_o do_v less_o hinder_v our_o faith_n as_o in_o the_o beginning_n the_o devil_n give_v eve_n a_o deadly_a wound_n put_v into_o her_o a_o false_a persuasion_n 3.2_o persuasion_n gen._n 3.2_o and_o solomon_n idolatry_n bring_v forth_o the_o worship_v of_o idol_n for_o a_o long_a time_n after_o what_o punishment_n be_v appoint_v for_o the_o author_n of_o this_o scandal_n christ_n math._n 18.17_o do_v threaten_v that_o lamentable_a sentence_n or_o horrible_a woe_n against_o they_o woe_n be_v unto_o the_o world_n because_o of_o offence_n and._n verse_n 6._o he_o pronounce_v that_o it_o be_v better_a for_o that_o man_n by_o who_o the_o offence_n be_v give_v that_o a_o millstone_n be_v hang_v about_o his_o neck_n he_o shall_v be_v cast_v into_o the_o bottom_n of_o the_o sea_n what_o be_v a_o offence_n take_v that_o which_o man_n take_v unto_o themselves_o from_o the_o do_n or_o say_n of_o other_o man_n either_o from_o true_a doctrine_n and_o the_o outward_a form_n of_o the_o church_n or_o else_o in_o general_a from_o any_o other_o thing_n whatsoever_o but_o in_o special_a some_o speech_n of_o we_o purpose_n or_o deed_n which_o be_v godly_a just_a and_o of_o itself_o honest_a or_o at_o least_o not_o do_v wicked_o and_o unreasonable_o by_o mean_n whereof_o notwithstanding_o some_o man_n do_v judge_v ill_o of_o we_o but_o without_o cause_n either_o of_o some_o frowardness_n ill_a will_n or_o a_o certain_a sinister_a spitefulnesse_n of_o the_o mind_n or_o else_o upon_o error_n and_o take_v it_o as_o a_o occasion_n of_o offence_n how_o manifold_a be_v a_o offence_n take_v double_o either_o from_o man_n or_o from_o the_o devil_n from_o man_n which_o also_o by_o division_n of_o accident_n into_o the_o subject_n be_v double_a of_o the_o wicked_a and_o of_o the_o godly_a the_o scandal_n of_o the_o wicked_a be_v of_o worldly_a man_n as_o of_o the_o wise_a man_n of_o this_o world_n and_o of_o hypocrite_n who_o be_v offend_v 1._o at_o the_o poor_a estate_n humility_n and_o cross_v of_o christ_n in_o our_o flesh_n assume_v 2_o at_o the_o absurdity_n imprudent_o conceive_v of_o the_o novelty_n &_o simplicity_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o preach_v of_o grace_n whereby_o we_o be_v teach_v that_o all_o man_n be_v by_o nature_n sinner_n &_o subject_n to_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n be_v justify_v and_o save_v through_o grace_n or_o by_o faith_n alone_o in_o jesus_n christ_n and_o by_o the_o article_n of_o election_n &_o predestination_n and_o the_o mortify_n of_o the_o old_a man_n 3_o by_o the_o life_n and_o action_n of_o the_o godly_a whereby_o they_o imagine_v themselves_o to_o be_v control_v in_o the_o free_a use_n of_o the_o thing_n of_o the_o world_n 4_o last_o by_o the_o cross_n and_o persecution_n which_o go_v hand_n in_o hand_n with_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o gospel_n which_o offence_n because_o it_o spring_v from_o the_o malice_n of_o they_o that_o be_v offend_v and_o from_o their_o spite_n it_o be_v call_v the_o offence_n of_o the_o pharisee_n of_o which_o math._n 15.12_o the_o discple_n say_v to_o christ_n do_v thou_o not_o know_v that_o the_o pharisee_n be_v offend_v hear_v this_o speech_n of_o thou_o so_o christ_n and_o the_o gospel_n be_v to_o the_o jew_n a_o offence_n take_v and_o to_o the_o grecian_n foolishness_n 1._o cor._n 1.23_o and_o the_o stone_n of_o offence_n and_o the_o rock_n of_o offence_n to_o the_o twoe_o house_n of_o israel_n 2.7.8_o israel_n esa_n 8.19_o luk._n 2.34_o 1_o pet._n 2.7.8_o to_o wit_n by_o accident_n and_o privative_o as_o christ_n be_v despise_v and_o reject_v be_v the_o author_n of_o just_a condemnation_n whereas_o in_o truth_n and_o by_o himself_o but_o to_o the_o elect_a he_o be_v the_o way_n the_o truth_n and_o the_o life_n and_o the_o fountain_n of_o all_o good_a concern_v this_o we_o must_v observe_v the_o warning_n of_o christ_n blessed_n be_v he_o that_o be_v not_o offend_v in_o i_o math._n 11.5_o so_o the_o sermon_n of_o christ_n concern_v the_o eat_n of_o his_o flesh_n be_v a_o scandal_n to_o the_o capernaite_n 60_o capernaite_n joh_n 6.41_o 57_o 60_o so_o the_o jew_n be_v offend_v with_o peter_n go_v in_o to_o the_o gentile_n 2.12_o gentile_n gall_n 2.12_o so_o the_o righteous_a action_n of_o the_o godly_a be_v a_o offence_n to_o the_o wicked_a 7_o wicked_a psal_n 56.6_o 7_o so_o the_o disciple_n of_o christ_n pull_v the_o ear_n of_o corn_n be_v a_o offence_n to_o the_o pharisee_n 12.2_o pharisee_n math._n 12.2_o so_o many_o be_v offend_v by_o reason_n of_o the_o jar_n which_o follow_v the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o condemn_v it_o what_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o this_o offence_n take_v the_o principal_a efficient_a cause_n be_v the_o just_a providence_n of_o god_n which_o do_v decree_n and_o execute_v this_o although_o man_n stumble_v through_o their_o own_o malice_n as_o it_o be_v write_v behold_v i_o put_v in_o zion_n a_o stumble_a stone_n and_o a_o rock_n of_o offence_n the_o second_o cause_n be_v satan_n who_o provoke_v the_o wicked_a to_o take_v all_o thing_n in_o the_o worst_a part_n the_o instrumental_a cause_n be_v the_o man_n themselves_o who_o be_v offend_v at_o the_o godliness_n of_o other_o the_o cause_n assist_v be_v the_o blindness_n of_o man_n reason_n the_o corrupt_a judgement_n of_o the_o world_n the_o affection_n of_o the_o flesh_n envy_n malice_n rash_a curiosity_n the_o neglect_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n bad_a opinion_n conceive_v the_o persuasion_n of_o a_o man_n own_o righteousness_n the_o desire_n of_o gain_n and_o keep_v credit_n hate_v to_o be_v instruct_v occasion_n be_v the_o confess_v and_o preach_v of_o sound_a doctrine_n the_o behaviour_n life_n deed_n and_o cross_n of_o the_o godly_a the_o condition_n of_o the_o truth_n as_o for_o the_o form_n or_o manner_n it_o be_v express_v in_o diverse_a example_n be_v this_o kind_n of_o scandal_n to_o be_v avoid_v no_o but_o not_o to_o be_v regard_v according_a to_o the_o comaundement_n of_o god_n deut._n 33.9_o he_o that_o shall_v say_v to_o his_o father_n or_o to_o his_o mother_n i_o know_v you_o not_o he_o that_o shall_v not_o acknowledge_v his_o brethren_n and_o his_o son_n these_o do_v keep_v thy_o law_n o_o lord_n and_o according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o christ_n concern_v the_o pharisee_n which_o be_v offend_v at_o his_o word_n math_n 15.14_o let_v they_o alone_o they_o be_v blind_a and_o the_o leader_n of_o the_o blind_a that_o be_v neglect_v they_o neither_o take_v care_n for_o offend_v they_o and_o of_o the_o apostle_n acts._n 5_o 29._o we_o must_v obey_v god_n rather_o than_o man_n and_o of_o bernard_n it_o be_v better_a a_o offence_n shall_v come_v then_o that_o the_o truth_n shall_v be_v forsake_v beside_o we_o must_v prefer_v the_o first_o and_o second_o commandment_n before_o all_o the_o duty_n to_o man_n according_a to_o the_o example_n of_o elias_n against_o achab_n 18_o achab_n 1._o king_n 18_o 18_o and_o of_o paul_n against_o peter_n &_o those_o which_o play_v the_o jew_n 11.14_o jew_n gal._n 2_o 3.4_o 5_o 11.14_o what_o be_v the_o offence_n of_o the_o godly_a take_v which_o be_v take_v only_o of_o such_o as_o be_v yet_o weak_a in_o the_o church_n or_o not_o wicked_a but_o be_v greedy_o take_v of_o they_o that_o be_v more_o malicious_a that_o they_o may_v make_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n doubtful_a and_o uncertain_a to_o the_o simple_a sort_n either_o by_o the_o calamity_n of_o the_o church_n the_o punishment_n of_o the_o innocent_n the_o heresy_n &_o dissension_n which_o